Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n church_n ground_n infallible_a 3,162 5 9.6287 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A62456 Just weights and measures that is, the present state of religion weighed in the balance, and measured by the standard of the sanctuary / according to the opinion of Herbert Thorndike. Thorndike, Herbert, 1598-1672. 1662 (1662) Wing T1051; ESTC R19715 213,517 274

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

with_o judgement_n as_o well_o as_o with_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n we_o have_v this_o evidence_n for_o that_o which_o i_o say_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o divine_n of_o this_o church_n that_o have_v declare_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n with_o public_a allowance_n be_v now_o allege_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_z to_o infer_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o be_v lawful_a as_o capable_a of_o the_o sense_n which_o they_o declare_v now_o the_o bound_n of_o reformation_n be_v visible_a by_o the_o faith_n church_n the_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o reform_v the_o church_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n and_o over_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o reform_n of_o they_o preserve_v ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o person_n that_o have_v it_o by_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o church_n from_o god_n can_v remain_v invisible_a for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n that_o the_o sovereign_n as_o a_o sovereign_n be_v to_o maintain_v his_o own_o right_n by_o such_o mean_n as_o he_o find_v meet_v against_o all_o usurpation_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o for_o the_o common_a christianity_n assure_v he_o that_o all_o such_o usurpation_n be_v contrary_a to_o it_o and_o beside_o as_o a_o christian_a sovereign_a it_o be_v his_o inheritance_n to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o protector_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n in_o the_o same_o right_n therefore_o all_o christian_a sovereign_n be_v bear_v advocate_n and_o patron_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o if_o by_o lapse_n of_o time_n they_o be_v go_v to_o decay_v if_o by_o any_o express_a act_n they_o have_v be_v infringe_v it_o lie_v in_o they_o to_o restore_v their_o subject_n and_o themselves_o to_o those_o right_n be_v bring_v into_o evidence_n by_o the_o authority_n and_o credit_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o see_v the_o determine_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n as_o well_o as_o of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n belong_v to_o those_o that_o have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o of_o necessity_n the_o fit_v of_o the_o present_a law_n of_o every_o church_n to_o those_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v be_v rule_v by_o from_o the_o beginning_n as_o the_o difference_n which_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o state_n of_o those_o body_n to_o which_o they_o be_v give_v shall_v require_v will_n by_o virtue_n of_o god_n law_n belong_v to_o those_o that_o have_v such_o authority_n by_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o these_o term_n the_o right_a of_o secular_a power_n in_o church_n matter_n be_v accumulative_a and_o not_o destructive_a to_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o these_o term_n only_o the_o sovereign_n be_v justifiable_a at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n in_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v do_v amiss_o in_o reform_v the_o church_n chap._n xxi_o the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n make_v the_o breach_n unreconcilable_a so_o do_v the_o pretence_n of_o perspicuity_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o trial_n must_v suppose_v the_o catholic_n church_n the_o fanatickes_n further_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o consequence_n of_o their_o principle_n worse_o than_o that_o of_o infallibility_n the_o point_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o middle_n between_o both_o how_o salvation_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o mater_fw-la of_o free_a will_n and_o grace_n salvation_n concern_v in_o the_o sacrament_n upon_o the_o same_o term_n the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o five_o sacrament_n the_o grace_n of_o ordination_n the_o reformation_n pretend_v no_o less_o abuse_v on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o point_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o mean_a between_o both_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o superstition_n of_o the_o puritan_n why_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v antichrist_n how_o it_o be_v just_a to_o reform_v without_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o upon_o supposition_n of_o the_o premise_n for_o which_o i_o conceive_v unreconcilable_a the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n make_v the_o breach_n unreconcilable_a i_o have_v produce_v competent_a evidence_n i_o proceed_v to_o take_v the_o balance_n in_o hand_n and_o to_o put_v the_o extreme_n into_o the_o scale_n that_o i_o may_v put_v it_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o that_o be_v resolve_v to_o prefer_v truth_n before_o faction_n or_o prejudice_n where_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n lie_v upon_o term_n of_o right_n and_o how_o near_o the_o public_a power_n of_o this_o kingdom_n be_v bind_v to_o come_v to_o it_o in_o this_o case_n when_o a_o uniformity_n in_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v settle_v by_o law_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o first_o place_n then_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v ●or_a a_o error_n of_o pernicious_a consequence_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o it_o submit_v all_o the_o part_n of_o christianity_n to_o the_o passion_n and_o interest_n of_o person_n that_o shall_v be_v for_o the_o present_a in_o power_n to_o sway_v those_o matter_n wherein_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v concern_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n manifest_a in_o the_o world_n that_o though_o that_o which_o concern_v all_o in_o point_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v treat_v by_o all_o yet_o that_o which_o be_v treat_v by_o all_o be_v conclude_v always_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o few_o so_o thing_n pass_v when_o council_n be_v frequent_v the_o freedom_n of_o council_n be_v interrupt_v and_o the_o present_a church_n accept_v for_o infallible_a the_o see_v of_o rome_n will_v of_o necessity_n be_v the_o present_a church_n and_o the_o passion_n and_o interest_n thereof_o will_v have_v as_o much_o power_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o those_o passion_n and_o interest_n can_v allow_v and_o stand_v with_o what_o the_o effect_n thereof_o may_v be_v i_o need_v not_o argue_v to_o those_o that_o profess_v the_o reformation_n upon_o that_o account_n only_o thus_o far_o they_o may_v seem_v excusable_a that_o there_o be_v no_o act_n with_o force_n of_o law_n tie_v all_o of_o that_o profession_n to_o maintain_v it_o infallibility_n may_v be_v claim_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o be_v true_a and_o it_o may_v be_v claim_v for_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v false_a they_o that_o pretend_v to_o reduce_v we_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v spoil_v their_o own_o market_n if_o they_o shall_v distinguish_v thus_o therefore_o they_o plead_v infallibility_n without_o distinguish_v on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v as_o much_o difference_n between_o the_o scripture_n so_o do_v the_o pretence_n of_o perspicuity_n in_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o and_o the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o to_o all_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o one_o be_v as_o true_a and_o the_o other_o as_o false_a as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v false_a and_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v true_a and_o to_o appeal_v to_o the_o scripture_n alone_o when_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o only_o be_v questionable_a be_v to_o declare_v that_o we_o will_v submit_v to_o no_o other_o trial_n but_o our_o own_o sense_n as_o they_o who_o declare_v the_o present_a church_n infallible_a can_v never_o depart_v from_o any_o thing_n which_o once_o it_o have_v declare_v for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o who_o appeal_v to_o the_o scripture_n church_n the_o trial_n must_v suppose_v the_o catholic_n church_n alone_o have_v before_o this_o appeal_n declare_v themselves_o in_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n between_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v declare_v themselves_o tie_v in_o conscience_n to_o stand_v to_o that_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n upon_o which_o they_o ground_n their_o opinion_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o difference_n what_o mean_v then_o can_v remain_v to_o bring_v that_o to_o a_o trial_n which_o cause_v division_n upon_o these_o term_n but_o to_o acknowledge_v one_o catholic_n church_n which_o our_o creed_n profess_v and_o by_o consequence_n to_o submit_v our_o sense_n of_o all_o scripture_n that_o remain_v in_o question_n all_o difference_n in_o doctrine_n all_o law_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v determine_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v within_o the_o bound_n of_o it_o for_o to_o proceed_v to_o divide_v the_o church_n still_o into_o more_o and_o more_o party_n and_o communion_n till_o we_o have_v lose_v the_o sense_n of_o any_o obligation_n to_o hold_v communion_n with_o
as_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o plead_v for_o the_o abolish_n of_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n for_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o our_o ecclesiastical_a law_n be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n so_o will_v i_o not_o open_v my_o mouth_n for_o improve_n they_o be_v it_o not_o to_o make_v they_o the_o law_n of_o god_n only_o true_a church_n the_o content_n chap._n i._n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n reformation_n be_v the_o restore_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v if_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o papist_n idolater_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o true_a church_n if_o no_o visible_a church_n than_o no_o sin_n of_o schism_n antichrist_n may_v be_v a_o idolater_n but_o can_v be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o church_n though_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o worship_v the_o host_n yet_o to_o kneel_v at_o the_o communion_n will_v be_v holy_a that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n profess_v be_v not_o idolatry_n if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n they_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o idolater_n be_v thereby_o schismatic_n before_o god_n pag._n 2_o chap._n ii_o the_o supposition_n of_o antichrist_n and_o idolatry_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o truth_n the_o supposition_n of_o one_o visible_a church_n the_o ground_n of_o communion_n as_o well_o within_o the_o reformation_n as_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n what_o the_o romish_a missionary_n get_v by_o the_o charge_n of_o heresy_n and_o the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n what_o we_o get_v by_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n and_o antichrist_n immoderate_a charge_n vain_a on_o both_o side_n the_o charge_n of_o schism_n on_o both_o side_n moderate_a as_o to_o the_o church_n the_o sin_n of_o schism_n as_o to_o god_n horrible_a the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n in_o charge_v the_o catholic_n to_o be_v apostate_n the_o sad_a consequence_n of_o that_o schism_n 8_o chap._n iii_o they_o that_o hold_v by_o one_o visible_a church_n be_v to_o own_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o nothing_o to_o be_v change_v but_o upon_o that_o ground_n we_o can_v be_v the_o same_o church_n with_o that_o which_o be_v otherwise_o though_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v settle_v will_v find_v advocate_n civil_a law_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v change_v till_o this_o rule_n be_v attain_v the_o beginning_n and_o rise_v of_o our_o difference_n the_o present_a state_n of_o they_o what_o term_n of_o agreement_n with_o the_o presbyterian_o we_o ought_v to_o allow_v the_o law_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o standard_n of_o all_o change_n our_o present_a case_n be_v ●ot_n the_o case_n of_o our_o forefather_n the_o act_n of_o henry_n viii_o no_o act_n of_o our_o forefather_n in_o religion_n imperfection_n of_o law_n in_o religion_n no_o imputation_n to_o our_o forefather_n the_o pretence_n of_o tender_a conscience_n be_v no_o rule_n it_o serve_v papist_n as_o well_o as_o puritan_n 15_o chap._n iu_o erastians_n can_v acknowledge_v no_o visible_a church_n found_v by_o god_n their_o opinion_n enable_v sovereign_n to_o persecute_v god_n truth_n by_o god_n law_n persecute_v the_o truth_n be_v the_o use_n of_o a_o power_n which_o no_o sovereign_a can_v have_v if_o any_o sovereign_n may_v punish_v for_o the_o religion_n which_o he_o profess_v then_o be_v subject_n bind_v to_o renounce_v christ_n if_o the_o sovereign_n command_v it_o no_o offence_n but_o charity_n in_o declare_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o reconcilement_n or_o punishment_n why_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v declare_v the_o declare_v of_o it_o no_o offence_n to_o superior_n 24_o chap._n v._o we_o have_v the_o same_o evidence_n for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n found_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a by_o the_o law_n of_o it_o the_o law_n which_o endow_v the_o church_n with_o consecrate_a good_n how_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o scripture_n how_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n 29_o chap._n vi_o how_o far_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o themselves_o tradition_n limit_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n difference_n between_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n and_o ritual_a tradition_n the_o difference_n between_o heresy_n and_o schism_n the_o dependence_n of_o church_n evidence_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o form_n of_o this_o dependence_n throughout_o the_o roman_a empire_n no_o exception_n to_o be_v make_v to_o it_o for_o the_o british_a church_n episcopacy_n by_o this_o form_n inviolable_a in_o all_o opinion_n and_o the_o church_n a_o stand_a synod_n the_o church_n visible_a by_o dis●●●ing_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n the_o breach_n that_o have_v come_v to_o pas●_n evidence_n the_o same_o 35_o chap._n vii_o reformation_n to_o be_v bound_v by_o that_o wherein_o the_o visible_a church_n agree_v no_o change_n without_o regard_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n regular_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mean_n of_o unity_n absolute_a of_o schism_n how_o we_o be_v visible_o one_o with_o the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n reform_v without_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 45_o chap_n viii_o what_o mean_v god_n have_v provide_v private_a christian_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n the_o duty_n of_o all_o estate_n for_o the_o reunite_v of_o schism_n the_o ground_n and_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o church_n matter_n how_o the_o conscience_n of_o sovereign_a power_n be_v discharge_v maintain_v the_o church_n 49_o chap._n ix_o difficulty_n in_o receive_v the_o fanatic_n into_o this_o church_n how_o their_o position_n destroy_v the_o faith_n absolute_a predestination_n to_o glory_n destructive_a to_o christianity_n justify_v faith_n include_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n the_o nature_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n show_v the_o same_o so_o do_v the_o state_n of_o that_o question_n which_o st._n paul_n dispute_v the_o conse●●_n of_o the_o church_n ●erein_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o church_n 54_o chap._n x._o why_o justify_v faith_n be_v not_o trust_v in_o god_n through_o christ_n of_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n of_o justification_n according_a to_o socinus_n wherein_o his_o heresy_n consist_v how_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o imputation_n occasion_v it_o upon_o what_o ground_n he_o be_v to_o be_v refute_v the_o help_n of_o grace_n grant_v i●_n consideration_n of_o christ_n obedien●●_n and_o therefore_o they_o infer_v original_a sin_n by_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n wherein_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n consist_v that_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v forfeit_v by_o heinous_a sin_n the_o danger_n of_o the_o contrary_a position_n according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o 63_o chap._n xi_o what_o law_n of_o god_n it_o be_v that_o may_v be_v fulfil_v by_o a_o christian_n of_o do_v more_o than_o god_n law_n require_v whether_o our_o lord_n give_v a_o new_a law_n or_o not_o of_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o christian_a work_n original_a sin_n be_v not_o adam_n sin_n impute_v to_o his_o posterity_n wherein_o original_a sin_n consist_v what_o original_a righteousness_n signify_v what_o good_a the_o unregenerate_a be_v able_a to_o do_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n 73_o chap._n xii_o upon_o what_o term_n that_o which_o be_v possible_a may_v become_v future_a the_o difference_n between_o necessity_n antecedent_n and_o consequent_a the_o difference_n between_o freedom_n from_o necessity_n and_o from_o bondage_n freedom_n from_o necessity_n always_o require_v indetermination_n not_o always_o indifference_n the_o object_n determine_v the_o will_n save_v the_o freedom_n of_o it_o whence_o the_o certainty_n of_o future_a contingency_n arise_v how_o this_o appear_v in_o the_o scripture_n god_n no_o cause_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o middle_a knowledge_n of_o god_n 80_o chap._n xiii_o no_o absolute_a predestination_n to_o glory_n predestination_n to_o grace_n absolute_a how_o glory_n be_v the_o end_n of_o grace_n in_o what_o term_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n stand_v as_o concern_v this_o point_n 86_o chap._n fourteen_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a as_o a_o christian_a and_o as_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n how_o anabaptist_n deny_v the_o faith_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reconcile_v with_o the_o church_n their_o error_n in_o rebaptise_v for_o want_n of_o dip_v what_o concern_v salvation_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n how_o the_o element_n be_v consecrate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o gregory_n nyssene_n the_o consequence_n hereof_o in_o the_o error_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n how_o the_o eucharist_n a_o sacrifice_n and_o yet_o no_o ground_n for_o private_a mass_n the_o eucharist_n not_o the_o sermon_n the_o chief_a office_n of_o god_n service_n 91_o
church_n a_o justifiable_a nay_o a_o commendable_a custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n may_v come_v out_o of_o use_n without_o any_o violence_n any_o fraud_n any_o purpose_n to_o defeat_v that_o pious_a intent_n to_o which_o such_o a_o custom_n be_v instrumental_a they_o who_o have_v rather_o break_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o comply_v with_o a_o change_n which_o the_o change_n of_o time_n and_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n by_o time_n have_v bring_v to_o pass_v shall_v be_v in_o my_o opinion_n schismatickes_n but_o what_o if_o our_o fanatickes_n shall_v be_v content_a silent_o to_o return_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n as_o presbyterian_o what_o if_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v bullion_n haereticke_n for_o the_o position_n they_o profess_v though_o not_o stamp_v by_o conviction_n and_o contumacy_n succeed_v and_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o that_o it_o will_v not_o then_o be_v clear_a how_o we_o shall_v wipe_v off_o that_o imputation_n to_o which_o we_o shall_v be_v liable_a by_o the_o perpetual_a rule_n of_o god_n church_n for_o receive_v and_o communicate_v with_o those_o that_o have_v stamp_v themselves_o schismatickes_n as_o schismatickes_n those_o that_o have_v declare_v themselves_o bullion_n haereticke_n as_o bullion_n haereticke_n without_o any_o ground_n to_o presume_v that_o they_o be_v change_v certain_o we_o can_v allege_v the_o catholic_n church_n for_o ourselves_o but_o it_o will_v rise_v in_o judgementagainst_a we_o when_o we_o stick_v not_o to_o it_o what_o condition_n we_o fall_v into_o if_o we_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n schism_n regular_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mean_n of_o unity_n absolute_a of_o schism_n of_o rome_n upon_o term_n of_o conquest_n it_o be_v manifest_a enough_o for_o wherein_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o limit_v his_o own_o authority_n by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n we_o render_v ourselves_o to_o the_o mercy_n of_o it_o missionary_n shall_v have_v do_v a_o great_a effect_n if_o they_o persuade_v we_o that_o we_o be_v schismatickes_n unless_o we_o return_v to_o those_o abuse_n which_o we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n which_o we_o handle_v with_o our_o hand_n they_o be_v so_o evident_a and_o so_o gross_a well_o may_v they_o persuade_v simple_a christian_n that_o they_o must_v first_o resolve_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o then_o what_o be_v true_a and_o what_o be_v false_a in_o religion_n by_o that_o which_o the_o church_n so_o resolve_v teach_v this_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n the_o short_a way_n then_o to_o justify_v the_o particular_n which_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o impose_v upon_o they_o and_o if_o we_o render_v ourselves_o upon_o these_o term_n what_o remain_v but_o that_o we_o admit_v whatsoever_o the_o pope_n shall_v impose_v for_o the_o future_a though_o we_o know_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n extend_v not_o to_o it_o which_o how_o shall_v we_o answer_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n either_o for_o ourselves_o or_o those_o that_o depend_v upon_o we_o and_o yet_o i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v when_o it_o shall_v please_v to_o hear_v reason_n a_o regular_a pre-eminence_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n in_o these_o western_a part_n and_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v and_o willing_a to_o consider_v shall_v find_v that_o pre-eminence_n the_o only_a reasonable_a mean_n to_o preserve_v so_o great_a a_o body_n in_o unity_n and_o therefore_o i_o count_v not_o myself_o tie_v to_o justify_v henry_n the_o viii_o in_o disclaim_v all_o such_o pre-eminence_n when_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o his_o purpose_n to_o disow_v it_o as_o not_o extend_v to_o his_o case_n for_o by_o the_o regular_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o have_v describe_v if_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v any_o man_n injust_o he_o do_v it_o in_o his_o own_o wrong_n he_o excommunicate_v himself_o thereby_o from_o all_o that_o shall_v adhere_v to_o he_o who_o he_o excommunicate_v his_o advantage_n be_v only_o this_o if_o more_o adhere_v to_o the_o chief_a church_n then_o to_o the_o less_o for_o which_o though_o there_o be_v regular_o a_o presumption_n yet_o if_o usurpation_n appear_v either_o in_o sentence_v or_o in_o the_o mater_fw-la or_o in_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sentence_n he_o that_o exceed_v his_o authority_n break_v it_o upon_o he_o that_o exceed_v not_o like_o the_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n against_o a_o rock_n but_o of_o the_o usurpation_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o they_o consist_v rome_n how_o we_o be_v visible_o one_o with_o the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n reform_v without_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v effect_v in_o due_a place_n that_o the_o difference_n may_v be_v visible_a between_o the_o infinite_a and_o the_o regular_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n what_o i_o have_v say_v of_o this_o point_n i_o must_v say_v of_o all_o matter_n in_o difference_n that_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v hinder_v we_o of_o restore_v ourselves_o to_o the_o primitive_a right_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n due_o may_v maintain_v the_o service_n of_o god_n neither_o consent_v to_o the_o abuse_n which_o other_o church_n maintain_v nor_o break_v with_o they_o in_o other_o matter_n so_o be_v we_o to_o go_v no_o further_o than_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n will_v bear_v we_o out_o for_o if_o we_o make_v new_a and_o private_a conceit_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o law_n to_o the_o church_n which_o we_o reform_v we_o find_v a_o new_a church_n upon_o that_o christianity_n which_o the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n never_o own_v but_o if_o we_o only_o restore_v that_o which_o by_o abuse_n of_o time_n may_v appear_v to_o have_v come_v to_o decay_v we_o imp_n and_o engraph_v the_o church_n which_o we_o reform_v into_o that_o only_a church_n which_o they_o that_o reform_a not_o succeed_v for_o how_o shall_v we_o depart_v from_o unity_n with_o that_o church_n the_o authority_n whereof_o we_o follow_v in_o the_o change_n which_o we_o make_v if_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o be_v without_o offence_n to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o st._n paul_n command_v then_o be_v we_o to_o be_v without_o offence_n also_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o it_o be_v no_o offence_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o we_o build_v unity_n among_o ourselves_o upon_o a_o opposition_n to_o the_o abuse_n of_o it_o but_o if_o upon_o a_o opposition_n to_o that_o which_o it_o hold_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o give_v they_o cause_n to_o take_v we_o for_o schismatickes_n as_o not_o reverence_v in_o she_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o hold_v with_o chap._n viii_o what_o mean_v god_n have_v provide_v private_a christian_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n the_o duty_n of_o all_o estate_n for_o the_o reunite_v of_o schism_n the_o ground_n and_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o church_n matter_n how_o the_o conscience_n of_o sovereign_a power_n be_v discharge_v maintain_v the_o church_n upon_o these_o term_n the_o choice_n of_o religion_n will_v become_v church_n what_o mean_v god_n have_v provide_v private_a christian_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n more_o clear_a which_o otherwise_o must_v become_v far_o more_o doubtful_a by_o the_o settle_n of_o our_o present_a difference_n for_o i_o grant_v it_o a_o thing_n too_o difficult_a for_o every_o christian_a that_o be_v concern_v to_o choose_v his_o communion_n to_o try_v the_o particular_n in_o controversy_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o maintain_v the_o same_o difficulty_n in_o try_v which_o church_n it_o be_v that_o preach_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o right_o and_o due_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n which_o other_o will_v have_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o without_o try_v the_o particular_n in_o controversy_n how_o shall_v it_o appear_v where_o the_o word_n be_v preach_v where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o be_v try_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n expound_v according_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o they_o that_o will_v have_v we_o take_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o present_a church_n to_o be_v infallible_a they_o be_v first_o to_o tell_v we_o upon_o who_o credit_n we_o take_v that_o infallibility_n for_o you_o see_v we_o believe_v not_o the_o present_a church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n to_o wit_n found_v by_o god_n we_o accept_v it_o upon_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n neither_o be_v any_o thing_n infallible_a in_o christianity_n but_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n it_o be_v not_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o present_a church_n but_o the_o witness_n and_o agreement_n of_o the_o
will_v be_v condemn_v for_o it_o there_o be_v therefore_o a_o three_o signification_n of_o faith_n in_o holy_a scripture_n comprise_v the_o outward_a act_n of_o profess_v as_o well_o as_o the_o inward_a act_n of_o believe_a and_o suppose_v this_o outward_a act_n of_o profession_n limit_v by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n according_a to_o which_o signification_n the_o ancient_a church_n count_v not_o christian_n fideles_fw-la faithful_a or_o believer_n till_o they_o be_v baptize_v this_o be_v in_o the_o middle_n between_o the_o other_o two_o for_o as_o belief_n go_v before_o it_o so_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o trust_n and_o confidence_n of_o a_o christian_n and_o this_o therefore_o be_v that_o which_o all_o those_o scripture_n that_o ascribe_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o faith_n make_v proper_o justify_v faith_n for_o according_a to_o the_o use_n and_o custom_n of_o all_o language_n they_o be_v ascribe_v to_o belief_n bya_n metonymy_a of_o the_o cause_n go_v before_o to_o trust_v and_o confidence_n by_o a_o metonymy_n of_o the_o effect_n follow_v upon_o it_o but_o this_o will_v not_o hold_v till_o we_o pitch_v upon_o that_o which_o come_v between_o both_o as_o that_o which_o qualifi_v a_o christian_a for_o those_o premise_n when_o therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o christ_n gospel_n cause_v a_o man_n to_o take_v up_o christ_n cross_n in_o baptism_n then_o have_v he_o that_o faith_n which_o justifi_v though_o that_o which_o prepare_v to_o it_o and_o that_o which_o ensue_v upon_o it_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o same_o attribute_n for_o be_v so_o near_o of_o kindred_n to_o it_o but_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o question_n which_o st._n paul_n dispute_v dispute_v so_o do_v the_o state_n of_o that_o question_n which_o st._n paul_n dispute_v visible_a in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n suffer_v no_o doubt_n of_o his_o meaning_n when_o he_o argue_v that_o faith_n alone_o justifi_v it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n at_o noon_n that_o all_o his_o dispute_n be_v with_o those_o christian_n who_o have_v submit_v to_o the_o gospel_n can_v not_o conceive_v that_o the_o law_n have_v no_o hand_n in_o justify_v they_o who_o they_o see_v live_v according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o that_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o that_o apostle_n themselves_o for_o the_o gain_n of_o the_o jew_n a_o thing_n which_o they_o dispense_v with_o for_o a_o long_a time_n till_o st._n paul_n be_v constrain_v to_o declare_v against_o it_o as_o root_a up_o the_o necessity_n of_o christianity_n and_o salvation_n by_o it_o alone_o that_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n all_o the_o new_a testament_n after_o the_o gospel_n be_v witness_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o be_v with_o st._n paul_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o christianity_n alone_o and_o whereas_o they_o be_v all_o assure_v that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v under_o the_o law_n he_o show_v every_o where_o that_o the_o father_n who_o be_v justify_v before_o or_o under_o the_o law_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v veil_v under_o it_o notas_fw-la jew_n but_o as_o christian_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o gentile_n which_o turn_v christian_n be_v save_v by_o the_o same_o grace_n as_o believe_v jew_n for_o as_o no_o work_n which_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v by_o the_o light_n and_o strength_n of_o nature_n be_v able_a to_o bring_v those_o that_o be_v without_o the_o law_n to_o the_o state_n of_o god_n grace_n no_o more_o can_v the_o outward_a observation_n of_o moses_n law_n by_o those_o work_n which_o mere_a nature_n be_v able_a to_o produce_v as_o tend_v no_o further_o than_o the_o temporal_a reward_n of_o the_o law_n of_o canaan_n express_o promise_v by_o moses_n law_n render_v man_n acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o the_o reward_n which_o christian_n expect_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v but_o by_o heg●sippus_n in_o eusebius_n we_o understand_v that_o the_o gnostic_n teach_v that_o the_o bare_a profession_n of_o christianity_n without_o bear_v the_o cross_n for_o the_o perform_n of_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o save_v those_o that_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o secret_n which_o they_o teach_v debauch_v and_o deflower_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o soon_o as_o st._n james_n be_v dead_a and_o therefore_o see_v that_o can_v not_o be_v do_v in_o a_o moment_n we_o have_v cause_n to_o think_v that_o they_o go_v to_o work_v in_o his_o life_n time_n the_o consideration_n whereof_o show_n that_o st._n james_n in_o argue_v that_o a_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n alone_o intend_v to_o teach_v that_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n justifi_v not_o when_o it_o be_v not_o perform_v and_o therefore_o st._n paul_n intend_v the_o same_o in_o argue_v that_o a_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o profess_v christianity_n so_o cordial_o and_o with_o so_o good_a a_o conscience_n as_o to_o perform_v it_o and_o for_o this_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v as_o current_n and_o as_o it_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n herein_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o general_a a_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o for_o christianity_n itself_o the_o life_n and_o soul_n whereof_o stand_v in_o it_o show_v i_o any_o author_n approve_v in_o the_o church_n that_o ever_o allow_a salvation_n without_o baptism_n when_o it_o can_v be_v have_v when_o it_o can_v not_o the_o profession_n of_o he_o that_o desive_v it_o be_v as_o clear_v as_o if_o his_o flesh_n be_v cleanse_v that_o comprise_v not_o the_o take_n up_o of_o christ_n cross_n by_o profess_v christianity_n in_o the_o nature_n and_o virtue_n of_o justify_v faith_n that_o oppose_v that_o faith_n which_o alone_o justifi_v to_o any_o other_o work_n than_o those_o of_o moses_n law_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v show_v this_o be_v every_o where_o to_o be_v show_v in_o all_o writing_n any_o way_n allow_v by_o the_o church_n that_o the_o justification_n of_o a_o christian_a depend_v upon_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o which_o he_o profess_v and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o attain_v by_o undertake_v to_o live_v as_o a_o christian_a upon_o the_o good_a work_n whereby_o he_o perform_v the_o same_o and_o the_o honour_n of_o christianity_n can_v stand_v otherwise_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n which_o it_o cleanse_v not_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o righteousness_n to_o which_o it_o oblige_v not_o he_o who_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n christ_n tender_v salvation_n upon_o condition_n of_o believe_v and_o live_v as_o a_o christian_a can_v expect_v that_o which_o he_o tender_v without_o return_v that_o which_o he_o require_v but_o he_o that_o be_v overtake_v in_o sin_n by_o this_o faith_n can_v do_v no_o more_o for_o the_o present_a then_o undertake_v so_o to_o believe_v and_o so_o to_o live_v for_o the_o future_a thereby_o he_o undertake_v all_o righteousness_n for_o the_o future_a and_o by_o undertake_v ●●_o be_v translate_v from_o the_o state_n of_o damnation_n for_o sin_n to_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n by_o grace_n which_o if_o he_o attain_v without_o undertake_v if_o he_o retain_v without_o perform_v then_o do_v not_o god_n glory_n appea●_n by_o his_o gospel_n but_o there_o be_v no_o thing_n so_o particular_a to_o this_o purpose_n as_o those_o say_n whereby_o the_o father_n declare_v that_o a_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o in_o case_n he_o die_v upon_o his_o baptism_n if_o he_o survive_v then_o that_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n whereby_o his_o profession_n be_v perform_v of_o which_o saying_n have_v produce_v a_o considerable_a number_n i_o be_o by_o they_o to_o measure_v the_o meaning_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o writing_n the_o article_n of_o this_o church_n set_v forth_o justification_n by_o church_n the_o sense_n of_o this_o church_n faith_n alone_o for_o a_o most_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o full_a of_o comfort_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o homily_n upon_o that_o subject_n i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o my_o position_n be_v lay_v down_o in_o that_o homily_n for_o there_o be_v many_o passage_n of_o it_o which_o show_v they_o that_o pen_v it_o no_o way_n clear_a in_o that_o point_n yet_o there_o be_v divers_a sentence_n of_o the_o father_n allege_v in_o it_o which_o can_v be_v understand_v to_o other_o purpose_n and_o other_o passage_n well_o agree_v with_o it_o but_o in_o the_o church_n catechism_n and_o in_o the_o office_n of_o baptism_n it_o be_v so_o clear_o lay_v down_o as_o will_v serve_v for_o ever_o to_o silence_v any_o other_o sense_n and_o
banish_v those_o prayer_n out_o of_o the_o pulpit_n and_o because_o the_o communion_n will_v not_o be_v renew_v so_o frequent_a as_o to_o meet_v with_o all_o those_o occasion_n which_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n it_o do_v serve_v for_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o christian_a design_n to_o enlarge_v the_o first_o and_o daily_a service_n with_o such_o form_n as_o may_v serve_v for_o most_o of_o such_o occasion_n prevent_v the_o offence_n which_o have_v be_v for_o the_o hope_n of_o prevail_v with_o god_n for_o that_o which_o press_v particular_a person_n be_v the_o charity_n of_o the_o congregation_n in_o equal_o desire_v the_o necessity_n of_o all_o christian_n when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v upon_o some_o particular_a occasion_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o general_a form_n be_v thorough_o observe_v the_o particular_a occasion_n only_o mention_v the_o eloquence_n whereby_o the_o church_n hope_v to_o prevail_v which_o god_n be_v the_o devotion_n and_o unity_n which_o it_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n with_o but_o i_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n leave_v this_o place_n till_o i_o have_v pay_v particular_a of_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o particular_a the_o debt_n which_o i_o owe_v to_o the_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v premise_v and_o open_o profess_v again_o and_o again_o that_o we_o weigh_v not_o by_o our_o own_o weight_n nor_o mete_v by_o our_o own_o measure_n if_o believe_v one_o catholic_n church_n and_o enjoy_v episcopacy_n and_o the_o church_n land_n upon_o that_o account_n we_o recall_v not_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o dead_a as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o live_n into_o this_o service_n there_o be_v the_o same_o ground_n to_o believe_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o prayer_n which_o those_o that_o depart_v in_o the_o high_a favour_n with_o god_n make_v for_o we_o in_o the_o prayer_n which_o we_o make_v for_o those_o tha●_n depart_v in_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o favour_n with_o god_n that_o there_o i●_n for_o the_o common_a christianity_n namely_o the_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o god_n church_n therefore_o there_o be_v ground_n enough_o for_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o those_o prayer_n be_v accept_v which_o desire_n god_n to_o hear_v the_o saint_n for_o we_o to_o send_v the_o decease_a in_o christ_n rest_n and_o peace_n and_o light_n and_o refreshment_n and_o a_o good_a trial_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o accomplishment_n of_o happiness_n after_o the_o same_o and_o see_v the_o abate_n of_o the_o first_o form_n under_o edward_n vi_o have_v wrought_v no_o effect_n but_o to_o give_v they_o that_o desire_v it_o a_o appetite_n to_o root_v up_o the_o whole_a what_o thanks_o can_v we_o render_v to_o god_n for_o escape_v so_o great_a a_o danger_n but_o by_o stick_v firm_a to_o a_o rule_n that_o will_v stick_v firm_a to_o we_o and_o carry_v we_o through_o any_o dispute_n in_o religion_n and_o land_n we_o in_o the_o haven_n of_o a_o quiet_a conscience_n what_o trouble_v soever_o we_o may_v pass_v through_o in_o maintain_v that_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n will_v never_o be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o it_o ought_v to_o follow_v till_o it_o cleave_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o particular_a eucharist_n why_o the_o communion_n service_n at_o the_o communion_n table_n when_o no_o eucharist_n i_o be_o not_o to_o expect_v that_o this_o proposition_n will_v take_v effect_n because_o some_o point_n of_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v only_o one_o man_n opinion_n though_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v that_o one_o man_n opinion_n further_o than_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o visible_a order_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o the_o beginning_n or_o the_o necessary_a consequence_n thereof_o in_o this_o estate_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n oblige_v all_o to_o hear_v mass_n all_o sunday_n and_o holyday-mornings_n and_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o abuse_n which_o we_o protest_v against_o in_o the_o mass_n consist_v in_o restore_v the_o eucharist_n the_o reformation_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v itself_o in_o this_o point_n till_o there_o be_v a_o provision_n that_o all_o may_v communicate_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o oblation_n though_o the_o reformation_n under_o queen_n elizabeth_n do_v silence_n it_o yet_o under_o edward_n the_o vi_o it_o be_v retain_v and_o they_o who_o be_v gratify_v afterward_o by_o silence_v it_o do_v now_o demand_v as_o for_o reformation_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o impose_v upon_o tender_a conscience_n for_o fear_v they_o shall_v not_o have_v room_n enough_o for_o their_o arbitary_a sermon_n and_o prayer_n which_o they_o can_v never_o secure_v the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v agree_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o what_o they_o will_v demand_v next_o for_o reformation_n how_o shall_v it_o appear_v for_o the_o standard_n of_o tender_a conscience_n be_v as_o invisible_a as_o that_o of_o venner_n spirit_n that_o make_v the_o rise_n for_o king_n jesus_n and_o have_v a_o visible_a rule_n in_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o will_v be_v either_o want_n of_o skill_n or_o want_v of_o charity_n not_o to_o distinguish_v the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v always_o frequent_v from_o the_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o pray_v to_o the_o saint_n which_o succeed_a age_n have_v add_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o reason_n be_v visible_a why_o the_o communion_n service_n be_v to_o be_v say_v at_o the_o communion_n table_n notwithstanding_o tender_a conscience_n which_o perhaps_o many_o that_o mean_v well_o do_v not_o perceive_v if_o christian_a people_n be_v seduce_v by_o perverse_a teacher_n can_v be_v make_v sensible_a of_o their_o duty_n in_o frequent_v the_o communion_n the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o forbear_v call_v they_o to_o it_o and_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o it_o weesee_n there_o be_v those_o who_o will_v needs_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n that_o have_v minister_v no_o communion_n to_o their_o church_n in_o so_o many_o year_n instead_o of_o take_v shame_n upon_o they_o for_o such_o abominable_a contempt_n of_o christianity_n this_o mischief_n be_v now_o imagine_v for_o a_o law_n when_o a_o law_n be_v demand_v by_o which_o tender_a conscience_n may_v not_o be_v tie_v to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n once_o in_o many_o year_n take_v away_o the_o communion_n service_n from_o the_o communion_n table_n and_o what_o mark_n shall_v remain_v of_o the_o duty_n that_o lie_v upon_o the_o public_a to_o reduce_v the_o law_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v god_n law_n into_o force_n what_o hope_v of_o reduce_v it_o if_o the_o mark_n be_v once_o blot_v out_o so_o much_o it_o concern_v to_o hold_v up_o a_o daily_a protestation_n of_o the_o right_n and_o duty_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o contestation_n with_o all_o public_a person_n in_o the_o church_n and_o state_n to_o bend_v the_o utmost_a of_o their_o endeavour_n to_o redeem_v such_o a_o inconsequence_n and_o indecorum_n in_o god_n service_n as_o the_o silence_v of_o the_o principal_a office_n in_o it_o and_o we_o be_v alive_a at_o this_o day_n by_o god_n goodness_n to_o call_v god_n and_o man_n to_o witness_v that_o if_o order_n be_v not_o take_v in_o so_o great_a a_o concernment_n the_o fault_n will_v be_v chargeable_a on_o those_o that_o do_v not_o their_o part_n towards_o it_o at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n but_o if_o my_o proposition_n may_v not_o hope_v for_o effect_n in_o the_o next_o law_n a_o secondary_a proposition_n according_a to_o present_v law_n place_n i_o shall_v wish_v that_o all_o curate_n will_v agree_v in_o that_o which_o by_o law_n they_o may_v do_v so_o far_o as_o i_o know_v the_o law_n or_o rather_o that_o all_o ordinary_n will_v agree_v to_o impose_v it_o upon_o they_o that_o be_v to_o divide_v the_o service_n of_o god_n on_o sunday_n and_o holiday_n morning_n into_o two_o assembly_n as_o it_o stand_v divide_v into_o two_o service_n that_o all_o householder_n may_v stand_v accountable_a for_o their_o whole_a family_n to_o see_v that_o they_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o church_n all_o sunday_n and_o holiday_n morning_n as_o before_o the_o reformation_n all_o people_n be_v oblige_v to_o do_v for_o though_o by_o the_o present_a law_n there_o be_v not_o provision_n for_o all_o christian_n to_o communicate_v yet_o be_v there_o order_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n by_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n mix_v with_o hymn_n and_o by_o the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n perfect_o sum_v up_o in_o the_o litany_n and_o they_o who_o shall_v have_v perform_v it_o shall_v have_v celebrate_v the_o lord_n day_n or_o festival_n with_o
rome_n in_o honour_v the_o saint_n and_o their_o relic_n or_o image_n without_o make_v ourselves_o obnoxious_a to_o the_o jew_n for_o any_o reason_n to_o do_v it_o with_o for_o christianity_n have_v put_v idolatry_n to_o flight_n which_o the_o law_n never_o pretend_v to_o do_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o have_v of_o image_n can_v make_v a_o man_n take_v those_o thing_n for_o god_n which_o they_o represent_v so_o long_o as_o the_o belief_n of_o christianity_n be_v alive_a at_o the_o heart_n for_o neither_o be_v it_o idolatry_n though_o it_o be_v a_o breach_n of_o this_o commandment_n for_o a_o jew_n to_o have_v such_o image_n as_o be_v forbid_v by_o their_o elder_n not_o take_v that_o for_o god_n which_o they_o represent_v but_o what_o honour_n of_o saint_n depart_v or_o what_o sign_n of_o that_o honour_n christianity_n may_v require_v what_o furniture_n or_o ceremony_n the_o church_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o they_o may_v require_v now_o all_o the_o world_n profess_v christianity_n and_o must_v honour_v the_o religion_n which_o they_o profess_v this_o the_o church_n be_v at_o freedom_n to_o determine_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n expound_v according_a to_o the_o best_a agreement_n of_o christian_n for_o neither_o be_v it_o oblige_v by_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nicaea_n or_o the_o violent_a proceed_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v bring_v it_o into_o force_n in_o these_o western_a part_n nor_o to_o the_o excess_n of_o the_o adverse_a party_n in_o the_o east_n which_o make_v the_o set_n up_o and_o reverence_v of_o image_n in_o church_n to_o be_v idolatry_n without_o sufficient_a ground_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o confine_v the_o literal_a intent_n of_o the_o decalogue_n to_o those_o gross_a commandment_n of_o the_o three_o commandment_n sin_n by_o which_o all_o jew_n be_v to_o understand_v that_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o nation_n in_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n must_v become_v forfeit_v as_o all_o reason_n require_v the_o take_n of_o god_n name_n in_o vain_a in_o the_o three_o commandment_n be_v in_o plain_a term_n to_o swear_v that_o which_o be_v false_a as_o the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n render_v it_o but_o a_o christian_n take_v up_o god_n name_n in_o profess_v christianity_n and_o when_o the_o world_n see_v he_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o agree_v not_o with_o his_o profession_n without_o doubt_n he_o take_v it_o up_o in_o vain_a for_o there_o never_o be_v any_o true_a israelite_n in_o who_o be_v no_o guile_n that_o worship_v god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o he_o may_v then_o understand_v that_o he_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a if_o profess_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n he_o shall_v live_v like_o those_o that_o worship_v idol_n much_o more_o a_o christian_n know_v that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o direct_v all_o his_o action_n to_o the_o end_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o service_n out_o of_o obedience_n to_o his_o declare_a will_n must_v needs_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v guiltless_a to_o god_n if_o they_o be_v not_o suitable_a to_o the_o profession_n which_o he_o wear_v it_o be_v question_v how_o god_n bless_a and_o sanctify_v the_o seven_o signify_v what_o the_o sanctify_a ●f_n the_o sabbath_n signify_v day_n at_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o keep_n of_o the_o sabbath_n be_v first_o command_v after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o israelite_n out_o of_o egypt_n for_o some_o will_v have_v it_o understand_v by_o a_o prolepsis_n or_o figure_n of_o anticipation_n that_o god_n in_o consideration_n of_o his_o rest_v from_o all_o his_o work_n on_o the_o seven_o day_n when_o he_o give_v the_o law_n make_v that_o day_n the_o sabbath_n other_o think_v that_o he_o sanctify_v it_o from_o the_o beginning_n for_o a_o day_n of_o his_o service_n though_o the_o rest_n which_o the_o jew_n be_v command_v sit_v still_o all_o the_o sabbath_n come_v in_o force_n from_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n and_o true_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o week_n which_o have_v be_v preserve_v among_o all_o nation_n who_o can_v be_v think_v to_o have_v learn_v any_o matter_n of_o religion_n from_o the_o jew_n seem_v to_o intimate_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o creation_n remain_v among_o they_o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o when_o idolatry_n prevail_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o seven_o planet_n be_v a_o prime_a part_n of_o it_o and_o astrology_n which_o appropriate_v the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o week_n to_o they_o a_o great_a mean_n of_o propagate_a the_o same_o and_o therefore_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o creation_n be_v obliterated_a by_o the_o superstition_n which_o the_o devil_n have_v graff_v upon_o it_o the_o observation_n of_o heathen_a people_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o this_o then_o to_o that_o and_o otherwise_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o scripture_n to_o answer_v tertullian_n with_o demand_v of_o the_o jew_n which_o of_o the_o father_n before_o the_o law_n keep_v the_o sabbath_n but_o howsoever_o if_o we_o be_v christian_n we_o must_v not_o question_v that_o the_o blessing_n which_o god_n hallow_v the_o seven_o day_n with_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o grave_n on_o that_o day_n by_o which_o that_o rest_n from_o the_o travel_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n of_o it_o which_o christianity_n profess_v and_o promise_v be_v purchase_v for_o christian_n for_o upon_o this_o ground_n all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v that_o sabbath_n which_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n signify_v and_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o four_o commandment_n be_v the_o rest_n of_o a_o christian_a from_o all_o his_o own_o work_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n not_o that_o i_o doubt_v that_o under_o the_o law_n the_o day_n be_v to_o be_v set_v apart_o for_o the_o office_n of_o god_n service_n but_o because_o there_o be_v other_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n num._n xxviii_o levit._fw-la xxiii_o by_o which_o that_o be_v provide_v for_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o precept_n according_a to_o the_o correspondence_n between_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n not_o only_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v set_v aside_o by_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n instead_o of_o the_o seven_o day_n which_o the_o jew_n observe_v but_o also_o other_o day_n of_o assembly_n be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v by_o god_n people_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n as_o the_o seven_o for_o even_o the_o seven_o day_n itself_o be_v observe_v and_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v by_o christian_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n so_o long_o as_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n require_v they_o to_o observe_v it_o for_o that_o purpose_n beside_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n have_v forbid_v any_o work_n upon_o the_o seven_o day_n common_a reason_n will_v serve_v without_o any_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n to_o infer_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o meet_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n which_o his_o people_n have_v always_o profess_v when_o they_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v otherwise_o it_o be_v true_a which_o origen_n so_o often_o charge_v that_o they_o can_v not_o assemble_v without_o some_o breach_n upon_o the_o strict_a sense_n of_o that_o command_n not_o to_o stir_v out_o of_o their_o place_n on_o that_o day_n and_o this_o sit_v still_o be_v as_o proper_o sanctify_v the_o day_n as_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n and_o the_o ash_n of_o a_o h●ifer_n sprinkle_v the_o polluted_a sanctifi_v to_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o flesh_n according_a to_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n ix_o 13._o so_o the_o keep_n of_o this_o commandment_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o serve_v of_o god_n all_o the_o day_n of_o a_o man_n life_n as_o our_o catechism_n expound_v it_o when_o the_o five_o commandment_n promise_v long_a life_n to_o they_o christian_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o five_o as_o to_o christian_n that_o honour_n father_n and_o mother_n will_v any_o man_n say_v that_o this_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o christian_n that_o profess_v to_o take_v up_o christ_n cross_n and_o to_o lay_v down_o their_o life_n for_o christ_n if_o he_o do_v let_v he_o say_v what_o land_n it_o be_v which_o christian_n be_v promise_v if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n which_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n figure_v wherefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o the_o king_n and_o all_o civil_a power_n under_o he_o be_v due_a by_o the_o letter_n of_o this_o precept_n as_o proper_o comprise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o father_n according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o that_o language_n the_o obedience_n also_o due_a to_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o synagogue_n be_v by_o the_o metaphorical_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n mother_n stand_v for_o
chap._n xv._o the_o ground_n that_o determine_v the_o form_n of_o our_o service_n the_o office_n of_o which_o the_o service_n be_v to_o consist_v of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o psalm_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n common_o call_v apocrypha_fw-la what_o preach_v it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n commend_v there_o may_v be_v preach_v without_o sermon_n and_o sermon_n without_o preach_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o second_o service_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o our_o communion_n service_n the_o general_a preface_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o eucharist_n the_o prayer_n of_o oblation_n institute_v by_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o the_o lord_n prayer_n at_o the_o eucharist_n the_o place_n for_o the_o common_a prayer_n 97_o chap._n xvi_o difference_n in_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n depart_v in_o grace_n before_o judgement_n the_o ancient_a church_n never_o pray_v to_o remove_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n to_o what_o purpose_n they_o be_v remember_v at_o the_o eucharist_n the_o saint_n depart_v pray_v for_o the_o militant_a church_n of_o prayer_n to_o the_o saint_n depart_v no_o common_a prayer_n in_o the_o pulpit_n by_o gift_n but_o in_o a_o set_a form_n at_o the_o communion-table_n apostolical_a grace_n subject_n to_o order_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o original_a of_o litany_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o eucharist_n how_o prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n prayer_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o the_o pulpit_n but_o by_o a_o form_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o long_a parliament_n prayer_n by_o the_o spirit_n 105_o chap._n xvii_o the_o lord_n day_n observe_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o other_o festival_n and_o time_n of_o fast_v be_v to_o be_v observe_v how_o place_n and_o person_n become_v qualify_v for_o god_n service_n preach_v not_o convertible_a with_o minister_a the_o sacrament_n time_n place_n person_n and_o thing_n consecrate_v to_o god_n service_n under_o the_o gospel_n ceremony_n signify_v by_o institution_n necessary_a in_o god_n service_n what_o kind_n of_o signification_n requisite_a not_o enough_o for_o the_o presbyterian_o to_o allow_v ceremony_n 112_o chap._n xviii_o office_n which_o the_o father_n call_v sacrament_n for_o their_o ceremony_n why_o the_o bishop_n only_o confirm_v the_o effect_n of_o ordination_n require_v ceremony_n in_o gi●ing_v it_o why_o the_o ordination_n of_o our_o presbyter_n be_v void_a the_o necessity_n of_o penanc●_n the_o observation_n of_o lent_n and_o the_o use_v of_o it_o the_o necessity_n of_o private_a penance_n for_o the_o cure_n of_o secret_a sin_n of_o anoint_v the_o sick_a according_a to_o st._n james_n marriage_n of_o christian_n not_o to_o ●ee_n rule_v by_o moses_n law_n institute_v ceremony_n be_v sacrament_n with_o the_o father_n the_o ceremony_n of_o these_o office_n justify_v institute_v ceremony_n 118_o chap._n xix_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n in_o the_o papacy_n be_v not_o idolatry_n christianity_n will_v sanctify_v kneel_v at_o the_o eucharist_n though_o it_o be_v what_o image_n the_o second_o commandment_n forbid_v reverence_v of_o image_n in_o church_n be_v not_o idolatry_n of_o honour_v image_n and_o of_o have_v they_o in_o church_n mutual_a forbearance_n which_o st._n paul_n enjoin_v the_o roman_n not_o enjoin_v elsewhere_o tender_a conscience_n ar●_n to_o submit_v to_o superior_n 125_o chap._n xx._n the_o declaration_n of_o v._o eliz._n enable_v recusant_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n what_o further_a ambiguity_n that_o oath_n involve_v what_o scandal_n the_o take_n of_o it_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n minister_v that_o this_o oath_n ought_v to_o be_v enlarge_v to_o all_o pretence_n in_o religion_n that_o abridge_v allegiance_n the_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o reform_v the_o church_n 131_o chap._n xxi_o the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n mak●s_fw-la the_o breach_n unreconcilable_a so_o do_v the_o pretence_n of_o perspicuity_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o trial_n must_v suppose_v the_o catholic_n church_n the_o fanatic_n further_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o consequence_n of_o their_o principle_n worse_o than_o that_o of_o infallibility_n the_o point_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o middle_n between_o both_o how_o s●lvation_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o mater_fw-la of_o free_a will_n and_o grace_n salvation_n concern_v in_o the_o sacrament_n upon_o the_o same_o term_n the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o five_o sacrament_n the_o grace_n of_o ordination_n the_o reformation_n pretend_v no_o less_o abuse_v on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o point_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o mean_a between_o both_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o superstition_n of_o the_o puritan_n why_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v antichrist_n how_o it_o be_v just_a to_o reform_v without_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 136_o chap._n xxii_o the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o question_n concern_v our_o service_n the_o reformation_n pretend_v abominable_a such_o preach_a and_o pray_v as_o be_v usual_a a_o hindrance_n of_o salvation_n rather_o than_o the_o mean_n to_o it_o what_o order_n of_o service_n the_o continual_a communion_n will_v require_v what_o form_n of_o instruction_n this_o order_n will_v require_v of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o the_o preface_n in_o our_o communion_n service_n of_o the_o preface_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o consecration_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o oblalation_n and_o the_o place_n of_o it_o of_o the_o comm●●●oration_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o particular_a why_o the_o communion_n service_n at_o the_o communion-table_n when_o no_o eucharist_n a_o secondary_a proposition_n according_a to_o present_v law_n 150_o chap._n xxiii_o how_o the_o law_n distinguish_v moral_a precept_n from_o positive_a how_o the_o spiritual_a sense_n of_o the_o decalogue_n concern_v christian_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o first_o commandment_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o extent_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n of_o the_o three_o commandment_n what_o the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o sabbath_n signify_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o five_o as_o to_o christian_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o five_o last_o according_a to_o christianity_n 164_o chap._n xxiv_o that_o no_o clergy_n man_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o more_o diocese_n then_o one_o of_o inferior_a order_n in_o the_o clergy_n and_o their_o office_n the_o conversation_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o use_n of_o church_n good_n the_o ground_n for_o promotion_n to_o high_a degree_n the_o university_n may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o some_o part_n of_o this_o discipline_n reason_n for_o it_o public_a fame_n of_o sin_n to_o b●e_v purge_v by_o ecclesiastical_a process_n sinner_n convict_v by_o law_n not_o to_o communicate_v before_o penance_n the_o cure_n of_o notorious_a sin_n the_o bishop_n office_n the_o church_n not_o reform_v without_o restore_a penance_n public_a or_o private_a what_o mean_v there_o be_v leave_v for_o the_o restore_n of_o it_o 172_o chap._n xxv_o god_n mercy_n and_o judgement_n require_v the_o perfect_a of_o the_o reformation_n which_o we_o profess_v the_o restore_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n be_v not_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v we_o not_o therefore_o chargeable_a with_o schism_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o schism_n destroy_v the_o salvation_n of_o what_o person_n by_o instance_n in_o the_o most_o notable_a schism_n difficulty_n of_o salvation_n on_o both_o side_n the_o reformation_n remain_v unperfect_a a_o instance_n hereof_o in_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n depart_v by_o the_o order_n in_o force_n a_o supplication_n for_o a_o full_a debate_n of_o all_o matter_n in_o difference_n the_o ground_n of_o resolution_n one_o catholic_n church_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o debate_n the_o consequence_n of_o it_o in_o unite_n the_o reform_v church_n a_o instance_n in_o the_o have_v of_o image_n in_o church_n a_o objection_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n answer_v that_o which_o excuse_v the_o reform_a church_n excuse_v not_o our_o schismatic_n 184_o a_o letter_n concern_v the_o present_a state_n of_o religion_n among_o we_o under_o the_o act_n of_o establishment_n prosecute_v by_o the_o ordinance_n constitute_v the_o trier_n and_o commissioner_n for_o eject_v of_o scandalous_a minister_n 207_o the_o due_a way_n of_o compose_v the_o difference_n on_o foot_n preserve_v the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o herbert_n thornedike_n 223_o just_a weight_n &_o measure_n chap._n i._n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n reformation_n be_v the_o restore_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v if_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o papist_n idolater_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o true_a church_n if_o no_o visible_a church_n than_o no_o sin_n of_o schism_n antichrist_n may_v be_v a_o idolater_n but_o can_v be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o church_n though_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o worship_v the_o host_n yet_o to_o
involve_v when_o division_n fall_v out_o upon_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n now_o breach_n of_o charity_n in_o hinder_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o that_o divide_v be_v abundant_o enough_o to_o destroy_v salvation_n though_o more_o then_o enough_o if_o upon_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v heresy_n to_o the_o church_n but_o he_o that_o will_v consider_v first_o how_o much_o the_o excessive_a apostate_n the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n in_o charge_v the_o catholic_n to_o be_v apostate_n charge_n on_o both_o side_n contribute_v to_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n then_o how_o much_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o christianity_n let_v he_o compare_v our_o present_a division_n with_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n the_o case_n whereof_o be_v thus_o to_o be_v state_v it_o be_v pretend_v that_o caecilianus_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o carthage_n by_o traitor_n and_o apostate_n for_o those_o that_o be_v call_v traditores_fw-la for_o deliver_v the_o scripture_n and_o other_o utensil_n of_o god_n service_n to_o their_o persecutor_n for_o present_a safety_n they_o account_v no_o less_o than_o apostate_n for_o betray_v the_o common_a christianity_n and_o that_o upon_o this_o account_n if_o eleazar_n and_o the_o maccabee_n have_v redeem_v their_o life_n by_o eat_v swine_n flesh_n their_o crime_n have_v not_o be_v the_o bare_a breach_n of_o that_o precept_n it_o have_v be_v apost●●ie_n because_o do_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o he_o that_o press_v they_o to_o forsake_v the_o law_n so_o the_o crime_n of_o those_o that_o deliver_v such_o good_n to_o persecutor_n they_o just_o take_v to_o be_v the_o crime_n of_o apostafie_n as_o do_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o persecutor_n that_o press_v all_o to_o depart_v from_o christianity_n and_o when_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n do_v acknowledge_v caecilianus_n and_o communicate_v with_o he_o as_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n then_o do_v they_o open_o forsake_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o apostasy_n for_o communicate_v with_o apostate_n and_o reject_v they_o because_o they_o reject_v apostate_n and_o have_v they_o not_o reason_n on_o their_o side_n if_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n under_o caecilianus_n have_v be_v real_o apostate_n admit_v the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v avoid_v for_o this_o unity_n must_v be_v found_v upon_o supposition_n of_o christianity_n if_o christianity_n be_v evident_o renounce_v they_o who_o acknowledge_v manifest_a apostate_n member_n of_o god_n one_o church_n must_v be_v account_v apostate_n themselves_o by_o they_o that_o will_v indeed_o be_v member_n of_o it_o but_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o profess_a apostasy_n and_o the_o crime_n of_o those_o who_o dissemble_v their_o christianity_n to_o save_v their_o life_n have_v be_v permit_v to_o hold_v their_o degree_n in_o the_o church_n profess_v it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o best_a when_o the_o danger_n be_v pass_v for_o though_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n allow_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v hold_v their_o degree_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o it_o be_v find_v necessary_a to_o abate_v of_o the_o rule_n that_o unity_n for_o which_o the_o rule_n be_v provide_v may_v be_v preserve_v and_o be_v allow_v to_o hold_v their_o degree_n in_o the_o church_n for_o that_o reason_n there_o be_v difference_n enough_o between_o they_o and_o apostate_n all_o this_o suppose_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o those_o who_o ordain_v caecilianus_n be_v indeed_o such_o as_o have_v give_v up_o such_o good_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a never_o appear_v to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v true_a whereas_o they_o who_o begin_v the_o schism_n by_o ordain_v another_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n against_o he_o be_v divers_a way_n convict_v to_o be_v such_o themselves_o but_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o consider_v how_o the_o donatist_n abhor_v the_o schism_n the_o sad_a consequence_n of_o this_o schism_n catholic_n mere_o upon_o this_o supposition_n without_o any_o other_o occasion_n of_o difference_n either_o in_o faith_n or_o in_o the_o rite_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n why_o they_o rebaptise_v all_o those_o who_o they_o seduce_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o baptize_v by_o apostate_n whereas_o the_o catholic_n take_v they_o for_o schismatic_n as_o they_o be_v seek_v only_o to_o win_v they_o upon_o such_o term_n as_o the_o reconcile_n of_o schismatic_n to_o the_o church_n require_v but_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o relate_v the_o slander_n the_o murder_n the_o violence_n the_o mischief_n which_o this_o division_n bring_v forth_o and_o that_o so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v understand_v till_o christianity_n be_v utter_o destroy_v in_o africa_n by_o the_o mahometans_n chap._n iii_o they_o that_o hold_v by_o one_o visible_a church_n be_v to_o own_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o nothing_o to_o be_v change_v but_o upon_o that_o ground_n we_o can_v be_v the_o same_o church_n with_o that_o which_o be_v otherwise_o though_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v settle_v will_v find_v advocate_n civil_a law_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v change_v till_o this_o rule_n be_v attain_v the_o beginning_n and_o rise_v of_o our_o difference_n the_o present_a state_n of_o they_o what_o term_n of_o agreement_n with_o the_o presbyterian_o we_o ought_v to_o allow_v the_o law_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o standard_n of_o all_o change_n our_o present_a case_n be_v not_o the_o case_n of_o our_o forefather_n the_o act_n of_o henry_n viii_o no_o act_n of_o our_o forefather_n in_o religion_n imperfection_n of_o law_n in_o religion_n no_o imputation_n to_o our_o forefather_n the_o pretence_n of_o tender_a conscience_n be_v no_o rule_n it_o serve_v papist_n as_o well_o as_o puritan_n all_o this_o while_n you_o see_v i_o take_v it_o not_o for_o grant_v that_o i●_n they_o that_o hold_v by_o one_o visible_a church_n be_v to_o own_o the_o consequence_n of_o i●_n it_o be_v one_o visible_a church_n which_o our_o creed_n profess_v but_o i_o say_v those_o who_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v and_o admit_v not_o the_o due_a consequence_n of_o it_o be_v they_o that_o weigh_v not_o by_o their_o own_o weight_n nor_o mete_v by_o their_o own_o measure_n but_o keep_v a_o weight_n and_o a_o weight_n a_o measure_n and_o a_o measure_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o thing_n accurse_a because_o they_o can_v both_o be_v the_o weight_n and_o measure_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n the_o order_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n good_n have_v both_o recover_v their_o possession_n by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o land_n in_o both_o these_o point_n the_o law_n of_o this_o land_n acknowledge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o evidence_n whereof_o be_v indisputable_a in_o both_o title_n they_o that_o be_v not_o content_a to_o go_v by_o the_o same_o weight_n and_o measure_n both_o with_o papist_n and_o puritan_n in_o all_o other_o matter_n they_o must_v answer_v god_n for_o weigh_v and_o measure_v by_o their_o own_o weight_n and_o measure_n in_o other_o thing_n weigh_v and_o measure_v by_o his_o weight_n and_o measure_n in_o these_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o difference_n seem_v to_o consist_v in_o two_o point_n the_o ground_n nothing_o to_o be_v change_v but_o upon_o that_o ground_n one_o concern_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o dependence_n of_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o great_a consequence_n to_o the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n the_o other_o must_v comprehend_v all_o the_o noise_n that_o be_v make_v of_o ceremony_n and_o form_n of_o pray_v and_o power_n of_o discipline_n and_o in_o fine_a all_o that_o be_v question_v concern_v the_o law_n of_o this_o church_n these_o be_v punctillio_n indeed_o one_o by_o one_o but_o all_o together_o they_o make_v a_o great_a sum_n and_o take_v they_o one_o by_o one_o it_o be_v considerable_a that_o the_o change_n of_o any_o one_o be_v the_o change_n of_o a_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n but_o if_o the_o change_n shall_v be_v make_v without_o provide_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o christianity_n in_o that_o which_o be_v notorious_o questionable_a among_o we_o then_o must_v we_o think_v of_o a_o new_a answer_n to_o the_o papist_n demand_n where_o be_v your_o church_n before_o luther_n time_n and_o in_o all_o case_n if_o the_o law_n of_o our_o church_n be_v change_v for_o peace_n sake_n without_o regard_n to_o that_o truth_n which_o make_v it_o reformation_n to_o change_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v it_o not_o become_v questionable_a whether_o the_o church_n of_o england_n remain_v the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o not_o for_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v that_o there_o be_v so_o much_o in_o question_n among_o we_o as_o if_o it_o be_v decide_v for_o the_o puritan_n will_v cast_v the_o advantage_n on_o the_o papist_n side_n and_o therefore_o
be_v allow_v to_o forejudge_v my_o opinion_n because_o it_o make_v our_o reconcilement_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n easy_a than_o they_o will_v have_v it_o for_o if_o division_n in_o the_o church_n without_o evident_a and_o valuable_a cause_n be_v a_o sin_n to_o god_n it_o will_v certain_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o bear_v they_o out_o in_o it_o by_o state_v our_o reformation_n upon_o undue_a ground_n for_o the_o term_n of_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o which_o be_v either_o invisible_a or_o inconsiderable_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o unity_n must_v needs_o translate_v some_o part_n of_o the_o blame_n to_o rest_v upon_o that_o side_n which_o exceed_v and_o therefore_o to_o excuse_v my_o freedom_n in_o publish_v that_o declare_v why_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v declare_v which_o follow_v let_v no_o man_n grudge_v i_o this_o plea_n for_o myself_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n that_o be_v convict_v that_o our_o agreement_n can_v be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n but_o upon_o the_o consequence_n of_o those_o two_o supposition_n according_a to_o that_o which_o follow_v i_o be_o not_o at_o rest_n till_o i_o have_v say_v it_o can_v there_o be_v peace_n have_v by_o compound_v the_o interest_n of_o two_o party_n without_o provide_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o our_o common_a christianity_n in_o those_o two_o article_n what_o joy_n can_v a_o christian_a expect_v of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v purchase_v at_o so_o unconscionable_a a_o rate_n here_o be_v nothing_o say_v but_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v when_o arbitrary_a power_n may_v have_v make_v it_o a_o pretence_n for_o persecution_n have_v the_o interest_n of_o usurper_n allow_v it_o it_o be_v a_o short_a view_n of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v publish_v heretofore_o present_v to_o those_o that_o may_v desire_v to_o see_v in_o one_o prospect_n what_o be_v the_o true_a consequence_n of_o it_o in_o the_o compose_n of_o those_o difference_n that_o remain_v still_o on_o foot_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o be_v involve_v in_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n before_o god_n oblige_v i_o to_o declare_v that_o opinion_n which_o be_v not_o declare_v may_v render_v i_o liable_a to_o that_o charge_n in_o god_n sight_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o offence_n to_o superior_n in_o declare_v it_o the_o superior_n the_o declare_v of_o it_o no_o offence_n to_o superior_n law_n of_o kingdom_n go_v by_o a_o rule_n that_o be_v make_v of_o such_o metal_n as_o may_v bend_v and_o be_v fit_v to_o the_o body_n which_o they_o be_v to_o rule_v only_o they_o be_v to_o aim_v at_o a_o inflexible_a rule_n of_o god_n truth_n which_o be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o every_o christian_a and_o therefore_o he_o that_o see_v it_o make_v crooked_a be_v bind_v to_o set_v it_o straight_o this_o be_v not_o to_o say_v what_o public_a authority_n shall_v do_v but_o what_o it_o shall_v intend_v to_o do_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v say_v when_o there_o be_v those_o who_o will_v have_v it_o intend_v that_o which_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o do_v in_o fine_a the_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n of_o our_o case_n seem_v to_o supersede_n for_o the_o present_a the_o rule_n of_o obedience_n in_o the_o church_n chap._n v._n we_o have_v the_o same_o evidence_n for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n found_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a by_o the_o law_n of_o it_o the_o law_n which_o endow_v the_o church_n with_o consecrate_a good_n how_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o scripture_n how_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n scripture_n we_o have_v the_o same_o evidence_n for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n a●_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o say_v then_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n signify_v nothing_o unless_o it_o signify_v the_o visible_a unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o outward_a office_n of_o god_n service_n not_o only_o the_o inusible_a unity_n of_o the_o heart_n in_o faith_n and_o charity_n unless_o the_o church_n be_v found_v by_o god_n for_o a_o outward_a society_n visible_a to_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o man_n not_o only_o for_o a_o invisible_a number_n the_o unity_n whereof_o only_o his_o own_o invisible_a wisdom_n inward_o design_v and_o i_o say_v it_o because_o i_o conceive_v i_o have_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o same_o evidence_n upon_o which_o we_o accept_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o we_o hold_v our_o common_a christianity_n for_o i_o have_v show_v that_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o scripture_n the_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o motive_n of_o faith_n there_o relate_v that_o be_v we_o hold_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n relate_v sufficient_a to_o oblige_v all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n afore_o christ_n to_o be_v jew_n all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o world_n after_o christ_n to_o be_v christian_n this_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o reason_n oblige_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o christian_n for_o in_o the_o nature_n and_o kind_n of_o a_o effective_a cause_n i_o do_v not_o suppose_v much_o less_o grant_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v sufficient_a much_o less_o effectual_a without_o god_n spirit_n ●ut_v if_o a_o unbeliever_n shall_v ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v true_a i_o grant_v sufficient_a to_o oblige_v i_o to_o believe_v it_o will_v not_o serve_v my_o turn_n to_o say_v that_o i_o find_v it_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o long_o as_o the_o question_n be_v why_o i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n my_o answer_n must_v be_v that_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o submit_v to_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v have_v they_o not_o know_v the_o motive_n to_o be_v true_a for_o which_o they_o do_v it_o assure_v i_o as_o much_o that_o they_o be_v true_a as_o if_o i_o have_v see_v the_o thing_n do_v which_o move_v they_o to_o believe_v especial_o be_v as_o much_o convict_v by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o nature_n that_o christianity_n go_v beyond_o judaisme_n for_o advance_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o goodness_n as_o that_o judaisme_n go_v beyond_o the_o religion_n either_o of_o pagan_n or_o mahumetan_n for_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o we_o believe_v that_o must_v be_v key_n the_o church_n found_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n allege_v by_o all_o that_o will_v allege_v any_o reason_n to_o unbeliever_n it_o must_v needs_o have_v the_o same_o force_n in_o evidence_v the_o sense_n that_o we_o allow_v it_o in_o evidence_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o submit_v to_o christianity_n upon_o motive_n record_v in_o the_o scripture_n assure_v i_o that_o they_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o christianity_n the_o only_a religion_n by_o which_o we_o can_v be_v save_v then_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o own_v the_o obligation_n of_o hold_v visible_a communion_n with_o the_o church_n be_v to_o assure_v i_o that_o it_o be_v god_n ordinance_n for_o the_o act_n or_o the_o act_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v found_v i_o allege_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n describe_v by_o the_o effect_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o to_o that_o effect_n grant_v to_o st._n peter_n mat._n xvi_o 18_o 19_o to_o the_o disciple_n assemble_v after_o the_o resurrection_n john_n xx._n 19-23_a in_o the_o term_n of_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n to_o the_o church_n mat._n xviii_o 15-18_a in_o the_o same_o term_n as_o to_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o render_v he_o that_o obey_v not_o a_o heathen_a man_n or_o a_o publican_n to_o he_o that_o will_v be_v a_o christian_n here_o you_o have_v a_o certain_a power_n deposit_v with_o certain_a person_n the_o effect_n whereof_o be_v visible_a in_o the_o succession_n of_o person_n derive_v the_o authority_n which_o they_o claim_v from_o the_o visible_a act_n of_o those_o person_n which_o be_v here_o trust_v with_o it_o and_o in_o the_o maintenance_n of_o visible_a communion_n among_o true_a christian_n by_o exclude_v the_o false_a it_o be_v true_a heretic_n and_o schismatic_n exclude_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o will_v be_v the_o church_n themselves_o if_o they_o can_v tell_v how_o but_o it_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o oblige_v christian_n to_o avoid_v they_o as_o the_o jew_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n speak_v do_v then_o avoid_v heathen_a man_n and_o publican_n and_o it_o oblige_v by_o declare_v they_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n i_o know_v there_o be_v those_o that_o will_v have_v the_o imputation_n of_o
heresy_n and_o schism_n to_o be_v now_o mere_a bugbear_n to_o fright_v child_n with_o but_o will_v any_o of_o they_o own_o any_o of_o the_o sect_n which_o be_v shut_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n from_o the_o time_n of_o our_o lord_n till_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n for_o true_a christian_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o they_o will_v not_o be_v not_o considerable_a for_o if_o all_o good_a christian_n then_o do_v then_o do_v all_o good_a christian_n own_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o consent_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n save_v this_o difference_n that_o all_o christian_n good_a and_o bad_a true_a and_o false_a agree_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n only_o those_o that_o be_v neither_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n let_v no_o man_n mistake_v this_o evidence_n as_o if_o so_o great_a a_o truth_n it_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a by_o the_o law_n of_o it_o be_v read_v only_o in_o two_o or_o three_o text_n of_o scripture_n they_o who_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o argue_v of_o such_o matter_n as_o these_o aught_o to_o know_v that_o the_o law_n of_o all_o commonwealth_n when_o first_o they_o be_v found_v be_v the_o will_n of_o their_o ruler_n according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o power_n whereby_o they_o rule_v therefore_o if_o our_o lord_n trust_v his_o disciple_n and_o their_o successor_n with_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o church_n he_o trust_v they_o also_o to_o make_v law_n for_o the_o rule_v of_o it_o provide_v that_o they_o tend_v to_o enforce_v not_o to_o avoid_v those_o law_n which_o he_o in_o person_n have_v leave_v they_o as_o christian_n for_o disciple_n that_o be_v christian_n he_o leave_v they_o actual_o not_o actual_o member_n of_o his_o church_n as_o not_o yet_o actual_o form_v though_o virtual_o found_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o he_o leave_v his_o disciple_n these_o law_n be_v as_o visible_a as_o the_o law_n of_o any_o kingdom_n or_o commonwealth_n that_o be_v or_o ever_o be_v be_v visible_a i_o do_v not_o own_o the_o pope_n canon_n law_n to_o have_v the_o force_n of_o oblige_v we_o for_o i_o maintain_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o usurpation_n in_o the_o power_n by_o which_o it_o be_v make_v as_o well_o as_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o abuse_n in_o make_v the_o law_n give_v by_o our_o lord_n of_o no_o effect_n by_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o but_o i_o maintain_v the_o pope_n canon_n law_n and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o that_o canon_n law_n whereby_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n now_o govern_v in_o the_o eastern_a church_n to_o be_v derive_v from_o those_o rule_n whereby_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o their_o successor_n govern_v the_o primitive_a church_n in_o unity_n and_o this_o no_o less_o evident_a than_o the_o christianity_n of_o this_o time_n be_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o christianity_n of_o that_o time_n for_o as_o the_o present_a law_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o primitive_a no_o more_o be_v the_o present_a christianity_n whether_o of_o the_o reformation_n or_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o primitive_a for_o why_o shall_v i_o make_v nice_a to_o say_v it_o pretend_v all_o reformation_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o restore_n of_o primitive_a christianity_n and_o to_o that_o end_n of_o such_o law_n in_o the_o church_n as_o may_v be_v the_o mean_n to_o restore_v it_o among_o those_o law_n there_o be_v one_o which_o oblige_v those_o who_o good_n the_o law_n which_o endow_v the_o church_n with_o consecrate_a good_n have_v give_v up_o themselves_o to_o god_n for_o christian_n to_o give_v up_o their_o good_n to_o maintain_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n wherein_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v estate_v the_o power_n of_o dispense_n the_o maintenance_n thereof_o upon_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n this_o provision_n how_o little_a soever_o notice_n many_o take_v of_o it_o who_o pretend_v to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n begin_v first_o in_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o disciple_n that_o attend_v upon_o he_o continual_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o gospel_n that_o those_o disciple_n which_o do_v not_o attend_v upon_o he_o continual_o furnish_v by_o their_o contribution_n a_o stock_n whereupon_o they_o subsist_v judas_n you_o know_v be_v trust_v with_o it_o and_o be_v the_o first_o that_o commit_v sacrilege_n in_o rob_v the_o poor_a of_o church_n good_n for_o the_o poor_a can_v not_o have_v attend_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n have_v they_o not_o be_v provide_v for_o by_o the_o rich_a of_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n be_v still_o the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o poor_a for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o be_v provide_v for_o they_o may_v attend_v upon_o god_n service_n therefore_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o when_o the_o christian_n at_o jerusalem_n give_v up_o their_o land_n and_o their_o good_n to_o maintain_v the_o church_n in_o contitinual_a attendance_n upon_o the_o service_n of_o god_n when_o the_o corinthian_n maintain_v their_o feast_n of_o love_n when_o the_o christian_n afterward_o build_v those_o church_n and_o lay_v those_o land_n to_o they_o which_o eusebius_n say_v be_v pull_v down_o and_o confiscate_v by_o diocletian_a be_v restore_v by_o constantine_n when_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o state_n by_o a_o civil_a law_n endow_v the_o church_n with_o tithe_n and_o glebe_n and_o mansion_n a_o thing_n as_o general_a as_o christianity_n no_o people_n no_o country_n be_v know_v where_o the_o church_n be_v ever_o settle_v without_o maintenance_n estate_v upon_o it_o by_o the_o church_n itself_o at_o the_o least_o if_o not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o country_n over_z and_o above_o the_o form_n of_o government_n in_o every_o commonwealth_n be_v state_v scripture_n how_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o scripture_n upon_o certain_a power_n wherein_o sovereignty_n consist_v which_o lawyer_n and_o philosopher_n call_v sometime_o jura_n majestatis_fw-la here_o you_o have_v in_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o power_n of_o admit_v into_o and_o exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n the_o power_n of_o give_v law_n to_o the_o church_n the_o power_n of_o dispense_n the_o exchequer_n which_o god_n have_v provide_v for_o the_o church_n and_o in_o fine_a the_o power_n of_o propagate_a these_o right_n to_o their_o successor_n whereby_o it_o pretend_v not_o to_o be_v a_o commonwealth_n because_o christianity_n pretend_v to_o maintain_v civil_a power_n and_o the_o right_n of_o this_o world_n in_o the_o same_o hand_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o term_n which_o it_o find_v but_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o visible_a society_n found_v by_o god_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n upon_o the_o command_n of_o hold_v communion_n therewith_o to_o which_o he_o oblige_v all_o christian_n and_o all_o those_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o mention_v any_o of_o these_o right_n signify_v no_o less_o when_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o be_v measure_v by_o that_o rule_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o determine_v the_o sense_n of_o any_o scripture_n that_o be_v questionable_a and_o the_o same_o be_v signify_v by_o those_o scripture_n which_o mention_n sometime_o several_a church_n sometime_o one_o church_n contain_v all_o christian_n and_o all_o church_n for_o the_o part_n that_o be_v particular_a church_n be_v visible_a body_n the_o whole_a must_v needs_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n the_o practice_n of_o all_o christian_n own_v a_o obligation_n in_o point_n of_o right_n to_o maintain_v the_o power_n which_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o most_o part_n only_a mention_n as_o matter_n of_o fact_n determine_v they_o to_o signify_v more_o than_o they_o express_v as_o for_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o call_n of_o the_o testament_n how_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n gentile_n to_o be_v one_o new_a people_n of_o god_n with_o the_o jew_n that_o shall_v believe_v be_v but_o foretell_v in_o they_o by_o prophecy_n and_o therefore_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o they_o can_v be_v otherwise_o declare_v in_o they_o then_o by_o that_o correspondence_n in_o which_o the_o church_n answer_v the_o ancient_a people_n of_o god_n the_o unity_n thereof_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n maintain_v itself_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n in_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n in_o which_o god_n have_v place_v they_o upon_o condition_n to_o live_v by_o his_o law_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v
of_o all_o nation_n and_o maintain_v all_o s●ates_n in_o their_o right_n of_o this_o world_n pretend_v not_o to_o any_o power_n of_o this_o world_n to_o maintain_v itself_o by_o it_o become_v visible_a by_o the_o free_a will_n of_o christian_n believe_v it_o a_o piece_n of_o their_o christianity_n to_o live_v &_o die_v member_n of_o one_o visible_a church_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o jew_n state_n tend_v to_o a_o temporal_a end_n of_o enjoy_v the_o land_n of_o promise_n answer_v not_o the_o invisible_a unity_n of_o christian_a soul_n but_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n according_a to_o that_o rate_n in_o which_o the_o law_n answer_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o be_v this_o point_n of_o christianity_n no_o less_o clear_o deliver_v by_o the_o old_a testament_n than_o other_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v chap._n vi_o how_o far_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o themselves_o tradition_n limit_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n difference_n between_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n and_o ritual_a tradition_n the_o difference_n between_o heresy_n and_o schism_n the_o dependence_n of_o church_n evidence_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o form_n of_o this_o dependence_n throughout_o the_o roman_a empire_n no_o exception_n to_o be_v make_v to_o it_o for_o the_o british_a church_n episcopacy_n by_o this_o form_n inviolable_a in_o all_o opinion_n and_o the_o church_n a_o stand_a synod_n the_o church_n visible_a by_o disow_a haereticke_n and_o schismatickes_n the_o breach_n that_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v evidence_n the_o same_o for_o though_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o salvation_n themselves_o how_o far_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o themselves_o of_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o only_o sufficient_o but_o abundant_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o how_o clear_o there_o lay_v down_o depend_v upon_o the_o purpose_n for_o which_o god_n declare_v that_o he_o give_v the_o several_a part_n of_o it_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o god_n intend_v to_o veil_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o old_a and_o to_o reveal_v the_o old_a testament_n by_o the_o new_a therefore_o christianity_n can_v be_v clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n till_o our_o lord_n be_v to_o leave_v the_o world_n he_o declare_v not_o the_o condition_n of_o christianity_n by_o which_o we_o be_v save_v he_o declare_v not_o that_o which_o he_o declare_v when_o he_o be_v to_o leave_v the_o world_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v thenceforth_o to_o consist_v in_o undertake_v to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o to_o live_v by_o christ_n precept_n though_o one_o life_n lie_v upon_o it_o for_o he_o declare_v not_o the_o promise_n of_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n till_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o therefore_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o christian_n do_v make_v that_o procession_n which_o save_v we_o be_v not_o institute_v till_o his_o departure_n and_o though_o our_o lord_n have_v clear_o preach_v the_o precept_n of_o christian_a life_n from_o the_o beginning_n yet_o be_v the_o visible_a estate_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o invisible_a estate_n of_o particular_a member_n dark_o figure_v and_o typify_v not_o only_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o as_o well_o by_o that_o which_o befall_v he_o as_o by_o that_o which_o he_o do_v during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o preach_n therefore_o neither_o be_v christianity_n clear_o deliver_v by_o the_o gospel_n to_o they_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v their_o epistle_n the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n must_v needs_o be_v know_v for_o they_o have_v be_v make_v christian_n upon_o the_o profess_v of_o it_o but_o their_o epistle_n therefore_o suppose_v it_o and_o therefore_o can_v pretend_v to_o deliver_v it_o beside_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v spend_v in_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o christianity_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o therefore_o by_o that_o correspondence_n in_o which_o the_o law_n answer_v the_o gospel_n the_o church_n the_o synagogue_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o though_o our_o lord_n open_v his_o disciple_n heart_n thus_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n yet_o be_v not_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v able_a to_o make_v out_o this_o correspondence_n the_o profess_v and_o perform_v of_o that_o christianity_n whereby_o they_o be_v save_v not_o require_v it_o therefore_o neither_o be_v the_o apostle_n writing_n clear_a in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o suppose_v the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o christianity_n whereby_o we_o be_v save_v nor_o absolute_o clear_a but_o to_o those_o that_o be_v able_a to_o make_v out_o that_o correspondence_n without_o this_o limitation_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v grant_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v clear_a to_o all_o that_o seek_v salvation_n by_o the_o scripture_n alone_o for_o what_o mark_n be_v there_o extant_a in_o the_o scripture_n to_o distinguish_v that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n from_o that_o which_o be_v not_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o inconvenience_n in_o all_o this_o to_o they_o that_o be_v scripture_n tradition_n limit_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n content_a to_o lay_v prejudice_n aside_o and_o to_o see_v that_o which_o they_o can_v but_o see_v for_o it_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o commit_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n to_o they_o who_o they_o trust_v with_o the_o sound_n and_o govern_v of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o instruct_n of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o form_v into_o church_n whereof_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v to_o consist_v so_o that_o as_o they_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v have_v receive_v their_o christianity_n from_o those_o that_o be_v so_o trust_v be_v to_o limit_v the_o meaning_n of_o their_o writing_n within_o that_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v so_o be_v all_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n still_o to_o be_v confine_v within_o that_o which_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v receive_v by_o their_o hand_n which_o be_v not_o to_o make_v any_o man_n lord_n of_o any_o man_n faith_n for_o this_o tradition_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v before_o the_o very_a be_v of_o the_o church_n because_o whosoever_o become_v a_o christian_a and_o so_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o he_o undertake_v the_o same_o and_o therefore_o be_v in_o force_n before_o there_o be_v any_o church_n it_o can_v depend_v upon_o any_o authority_n to_o be_v claim_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o evidence_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o ground_n into_o which_o the_o reason_n of_o believe_v resolve_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n which_o as_o it_o can_v not_o have_v be_v preserve_v and_o obtain_v have_v it_o not_o be_v require_v to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o member_n of_o that_o church_n which_o by_o profess_v it_o stand_v visible_o distinct_a from_o all_o that_o profess_v i●_n not_o so_o since_o as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v be_v already_o declare_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n to_o confine_v all_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n within_o that_o which_o all_o the_o church_n every_o where_o at_o all_o time_n have_v receive_v can_v make_v no_o man_n lord_n over_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n but_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a distance_n between_o this_o tradition_n of_o faith_n tradition_n difference_n between_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n and_o ritual_a tradition_n and_o other_o tradition_n which_o may_v have_v proceed_v from_o that_o authority_n and_o trust_v for_o sound_v the_o church_n which_o our_o lord_n leave_v with_o his_o apostle_n and_o they_o with_o the_o church_n for_o that_o be_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o all_o christian_n be_v save_v remain_v always_o the_o same_o neither_o to_o be_v increase_v nor_o diminish_v till_o the_o world_n end_n but_o the_o production_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n vest_v in_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o limit_v of_o circumstance_n according_a to_o which_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v and_o those_o power_n exercise_v which_o god_n have_v grant_v the_o church_n for_o the_o maintain_n of_o unity_n in_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o that_o christianity_n which_o our_o lord_n teach_v christianity_n be_v concern_v in_o they_o but_o two_o way_n the_o first_o when_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o advance_v the_o service_n of_o god_n which_o christianity_n require_v that_o it_o be_v impair_v and_o destroy_v by_o corruption_n in_o they_o the_o second_o when_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n proceed_v to_o a_o change_n in_o they_o upon_o pretence_n that_o
so_o it_o be_v though_o indeed_o it_o be_v otherwise_o the_o first_o be_v the_o plea_n of_o the_o reformation_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o second_o the_o plea_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o they_o as_o to_o this_o point_n of_o tradition_n and_o the_o issue_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o be_v try_v between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o those_o that_o stand_v at_o this_o distance_n from_o it_o for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n the_o breach_n of_o it_o will_v be_v chargeable_a upon_o that_o side_n which_o make_v such_o a_o change_n as_o the_o rest_n have_v not_o reason_n to_o embrace_v if_o the_o pretence_n thereof_o be_v either_o not_o evident_a or_o not_o sufficient_a the_o fault_n be_v in_o they_o if_o both_o in_o those_o who_o refuse_v to_o join_v in_o i●_n the_o rule_n and_o custom_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v call_v tradition_n be_v not_o command_v because_o good_a but_o be_v good_a because_o command_v and_o therefore_o even_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o this_o kind_n may_v cease_v to_o oblige_v by_o the_o change_n that_o may-succeed_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o they_o be_v provide_v instance_n hereof_o record_v in_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v produce_v they_o therefore_o that_o break_n from_o the_o church_n upon_o any_o point_n schism_n the_o difference_n between_o haeresic_n and_o schism_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v before_o the_o church_n as_o be_v requisite_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v proper_o call_v heretic_n for_o if_o they_o only_o disbeleeve_v in_o the_o heart_n they_o may_v be_v count_v heretic_n to_o god_n but_o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o church_n of_o which_o we_o now_o speak_v but_o they_o that_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n subject_a to_o it_o be_v schismatic_n for_o those_o thing_n to_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n extend_v be_v the_o matter_n of_o schism_n not_o that_o this_o difference_n be_v always_o observe_v for_o many_o time_n the_o name_n of_o heresy_n extend_v to_o all_o sect_n which_o man_n choice_n not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n creat_v but_o because_o there_o be_v that_o difference_n visible_a in_o the_o mater_fw-la of_o christianity_n which_o many_o time_n appropriate_v the_o common_a name_n of_o heresy_n to_o the_o most_o eminent_a that_o separate_a upon_o matter_n of_o faith_n these_o thing_n be_v here_o premise_v to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o evidence_n which_o i_o tender_v for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n he_o that_o stick_v at_o any_o point_n of_o it_o may_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o proof_n which_o i_o have_v make_v in_o due_a place_n take_v all_o therefore_o here_o for_o grant_v but_o i_o will_v advance_v another_o assumption_n tend_v ●o_o set_v the_o church_n the_o dependence_n of_o church_n evid●n●eth_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n same_o evidence_n in_o better_a light_n by_o state_v the_o form_n in_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n have_v always_o be_v govern_v without_o repeat_v the_o proof_n whereby_o it_o appear_v a_o church_n then_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o christian_n before_o the_o reformation_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christian_n contain_v in_o a_o city_n and_o the_o territory_n of_o it_o for_o the_o government_n of_o such_o a_o one_o the_o respective_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n convey_v by_o the_o overt_a act_n of_o their_o ordination_n be_v visible_o vest_v in_o a_o bishop_n in_o a_o number_n of_o presbyter_n for_o his_o advice_n and_o assistance_n and_o in_o deacon_n attend_v upon_o they_o and_o upon_o the_o execute_n of_o their_o order_n i_o say_v the_o respective_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n because_o as_o less_o city_n be_v subject_a to_o great_a in_o civil_a government_n so_o have_v the_o church_n of_o less_o city_n always_o depend_v upon_o church_n of_o great_a city_n throughout_o christendom_n rome_n alex●ndria_n antiochia_n be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n visible_a head_n of_o these_o great_a resort_n in_o church_n government_n which_o the_o council_n of_o n●c●●_n make_v subject_a to_o they_o by_o canon_n law_n for_o the_o future_a the_o eminence_n of_o other_o city_n over_o their_o inferior_a church_n appear_v in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n as_o soon_o as_o there_o be_v any_o mention_n of_o they_o to_o make_v it_o appea●_n in_o these_o church_n and_o in_o the_o governor_n of_o they_o the_o whole_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v vest_v for_o they_o constitute_v the_o church_n in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o government_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n empire_n the_o form_n of_o this_o dependence_n throughout_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v mould_v anew_o under_o constantine_n otherwise_o than_o it_o have_v be_v by_o augustus_n but_o this_o new_a model_n be_v design_v by_o adrian_n it_o make_v the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o chief_a quarter_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o residence_n of_o the_o chief_a commander_n of_o the_o army_n with_o civil_a jurisdiction_n respective_a which_o civil_a jurisdiction_n constan●ine_n leave_v they_o when_o he_o take_v from_o they_o their_o command_n over_o the_o army_n carthage_n for_o africa_n milane_n for_o italy_n that_o part_n which_o be_v not_o under_o rome_n trier_n for_o gaul_n thessalonica_n for_o illyricum_n ephesus_n for_o asia_n caesarea_n cappadociae_fw-la for_o pontus_n the_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o visible_a over_o the_o church_n of_o their_o inferior_a city_n in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o city_n in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o according_a the_o course_n of_o all_o humane_a affair_n must_v not_o this_o preeminence_a of_o necessity_n be_v further_o limit_v enlarge_v or_o abate_v in_o process_n of_o time_n whether_o by_o write_v law_n or_o by_o silent_a custom_n for_o the_o effect_n hereof_o i_o present_v to_o your_o consideration_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n whick_z i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o great_a advantage_n that_o ever_o lawful_o and_o by_o regular_a mean_n accrue_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n towards_o that_o greatness_n which_o since_o it_o have_v irregular_o obtain_v for_o it_o be_v visible_a that_o they_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o extend_v the_o superiority_n thereof_o over_o illyricum_n which_o continue_v till_o the_o eastern_a empire_n have_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o jealousy_n lay_v that_o whole_a jurisdiction_n under_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n the_o increase_n of_o which_o church_n upon_o the_o seat_v of_o the_o empire_n at_o that_o city_n the_o ground_n which_o i_o allege_v for_o the_o superiority_n of_o all_o church_n as_o it_o have_v be_v unjust_o oppose_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o it_o be_v just_o own_a by_o those_o who_o protest_v against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o it_o they_o that_o will_v except_v britain_n out_o of_o this_o rule_n upon_o the_o church_n no_o exception_n to_o be_v make_v to_o it_o for_o the_o british_a church_n act_n of_o the_o welsh_a bishop_n refuse_v austin_n the_o monk_n for_o their_o head_n shall_v consider_v that_o st._n gregory_n set_v he_o over_o the_o saxon_a church_n which_o he_o have_v found_v according_a to_o rule_n transgress_v the_o rule_n in_o set_v he_o over_o the_o welsh_a church_n for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n maintain_v every_o nation_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n which_o the_o welsh_a have_v reason_n then_o to_o insist_v upon_o because_o of_o the_o jealousy_n which_o appear_v from_o the_o saxon_n of_o their_o encroach_a upon_o the_o nation_n if_o their_o bishop_n shall_v be_v own_v for_o the_o head_n of_o the_o welsh_a church_n set_v this_o case_n aside_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o little_a remembrance_n that_o remain_v concern_v the_o british_a church_n testify_v the_o like_a respect_n from_o it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o church_n of_o gaul_n spain_n and_o africa_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v that_o they_o first_o receive_v their_o christianity_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o so_o they_o do_v then_o be_v there_o reason_n to_o conclude_v that_o they_o owe_v it_o the_o respect_n which_o be_v due_a to_o their_o mother_n church_n but_o that_o they_o either_o owe_v it_o or_o show_v it_o the_o respect_n of_o a_o subject_a to_o the_o sovereign_n which_o none_o be_v challenge_v none_o at_o all_o as_o for_o illyricum_n which_o show_v the_o same_o respect_n after_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n it_o can_v be_v think_v to_o have_v owe_v it_o before_o because_o it_o receive_v not_o christianity_n synod_n episcopacy_n by_o this_o form●_n
inviolable_a in_o all_o opinion_n and_o the_o church_n a_o stand_a synod_n from_o rome_n hereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n must_v stand_v or_o fall_v with_o episcopacy_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o they_o who_o acknowledge_v not_o episcopacy_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o this_o unity_n consist_v in_o the_o resort_n of_o inferior_a church_n to_o superior_n and_o in_o the_o correspondence_n of_o parallel_a church_n neither_o can_v this_o resort_n nor_o this_o correspondence_n ever_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v have_v and_o exercise_v but_o between_o bishop_n as_o head_n in_o behalf_n of_o their_o church_n whether_o by_o a_o treaty_n of_o bishop_n personal_o assemble_v in_o council_n or_o by_o correspondence_n between_o bishop_n by_o mean_n of_o their_o presbyter_n deacon_n or_o inferior_a clergy_n good_a intelligence_n be_v preserve_v between_o church_n towards_o the_o maintain_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o whole_a it_o matter_n not_o the_o church_n in_o the_o form_n which_o i_o state_n be_v a_o stand_a synod_n able_a by_o consent_n of_o the_o chief_a church_n contain_v the_o consent_n of_o their_o resort_n to_o conclude_v the_o whole_a in_o all_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n let_v they_o show_v i_o one_o presbyter_n that_o ever_o answer_v for_o his_o church_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n at_o least_o in_o his_o own_o name_n for_o if_o in_o the_o name_n of_o and_o by_o commission_n from_o his_o bishop_n it_o be_v for_o my_o turn_n and_o let_v they_o take_v all_o and_o therefore_o though_o episcopacy_n must_v needs_o be_v declare_v for_o part_n of_o god_n law_n by_o the_o scripture_n understand_v as_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n direct_v against_o which_o no_o scripture_n can_v be_v right_o understand_v yet_o suppose_v the_o church_n visible_a by_o god_n law_n i_o have_v enough_o to_o make_v they_o schismatickes_n that_o oppose_v it_o though_o i_o shall_v make_v episcopacy_n no_o part_n of_o god_n law_n but_o introduce_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o that_o part_n which_o submit_v not_o to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a in_o matter_n which_o god_n law_n refer_v to_o the_o whole_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o that_o unity_n which_o it_o enact_v be_v just_o to_o be_v take_v for_o those_o that_o violate_v the_o unity_n which_o god_n law_n enact_v epecial_o in_o a_o law_n of_o that_o consequence_n as_o one_o of_o those_o right_n wherein_o the_o chief_a power_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v it_o be_v strange_a to_o see_v how_o fond_o man_n argue_v that_o presbyter_n have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o make_v the_o apostle_n apostle_n therefore_o much_o more_o be_v they_o equal_a to_o bishop_n as_o if_o they_o can_v not_o have_v that_o power_n in_o private_a matter_n between_o god_n and_o the_o conscience_n of_o particular_a christian_n reserve_v the_o same_o power_n for_o the_o bishop_n peculiar_a in_o thing_n which_o be_v public_a concern_v the_o body_n of_o each_o church_n for_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o arius_n this_o power_n be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o in_o no_o less_o have_v athanasius_n of_o alexandria_n or_o alexander_n of_o constantinople_n loose_v he_o who_o the_o synod_n have_v bind_v though_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o constantine_n they_o have_v be_v sinner_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o church_n in_o violate_v the_o unity_n thereof_o which_o he_o have_v make_v more_o inviolable_a than_o any_o temporal_a endowment_n of_o it_o how_o far_o be_v we_o now_o from_o have_v evidence_v the_o visible_a unity_n of_o god_n church_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n schismatickes_n the_o church_n visible_a by_o disow_a haereticke_n and_o schismatickes_n suppose_v these_o thing_n prove_v the_o proof_n whereof_o have_v no_o way_n be_v insringe_v haereticke_n be_v condemn_v by_o themselves_o say_v paul_n because_o they_o know_v they_o forsake_v that_o profession_n upon_o which_o they_o be_v baptize_v member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v titus_n that_o be_v to_o refuse_v they_o the_o church_n avoid_v they_o because_o the_o bishop_n find_v they_o incorrigible_a if_o other_o bishop_n and_o their_o church_n due_o inform_v from_o titus_n do_v the_o like_a then_o be_v the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a in_o their_o proceed_n if_o they_o do_v not_o the_o like_a then_o must_v they_o break_v communion_n with_o titus_n and_o his_o church_n by_o a_o perpetual_a rule_n of_o the_o church_n hold_v all_o excommunicate_a that_o shall_v acknowledge_v a_o excommunicate_a person_n to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o read_v of_o no_o breach_n in_o the_o church_n for_o any_o of_o those_o who_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v haereticke_n except_o what_o shall_v by_o and_o by_o be_v except_v thus_o far_o all_o the_o church_n ow_v the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o schism_n how_o many_o occasion_n of_o it_o have_v be_v prevent_v the_o difference_n about_o keep_v easter_n the_o difference_n about_o rebaptise_v haereticke_n many_o other_o difference_n have_v threaten_v breach_n in_o the_o church_n which_o have_v be_v prevent_v through_o the_o conduct_n of_o christian_a prelate_n other_o division_n that_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v have_v be_v reunite_v sometime_o sometime_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o sardinia_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a church_n stand_v interrupt_v by_o the_o discontent_n of_o lucifer_n archbishop_n there_o and_o therefore_o i_o conceive_v for_o his_o time_n and_o no_o more_o the_o church_n of_o antiochia_n stand_v divide_v within_o itself_o under_o two_o bishop_n for_o a_o matter_n of_o threescore_o year_n till_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o west_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o east_n it_o be_v reunite_v the_o east_n under_o constantinople_n stand_v divide_v from_o the_o west_n under_o rome_n upon_o the_o cause_n of_o acacius_n for_o some_o seventy_o year_n till_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v satisfy_v how_o long_o the_o schism_n of_o montanus_n last_v for_o at_o the_o first_o it_o be_v but_o a_o schism_n if_o we_o judge_v by_o tertullian_n who_o be_v the_o best_a record_n that_o remain_v of_o it_o i_o say_v not_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v turn_v into_o a_o heresy_n first_o and_o then_o to_o nothing_o as_o other_o heresy_n have_v do_v the_o schism_n of_o the_o novatian_o for_o it_o be_v no_o more_o seem_v to_o have_v return_v to_o the_o church_n by_o piece_n and_o so_o that_o of_o the_o meletian_o the_o donatist_n seem_v to_o have_v continue_v till_o africa_n be_v overrun_v by_o the_o mahometans_n in_o all_o these_o breach_n what_o signify_v the_o attribute_n of_o one_o catholic_n church_n but_o a_o visible_a unity_n opposite_a to_o so_o many_o visible_a apostasy_n st._n austin_n say_v that_o if_o a_o stranger_n ask_v a_o haeretick_n or_o schismatic_a the_o way_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n he_o dare_v not_o show_v he_o the_o way_n to_o his_o own_o church_n because_o the_o title_n be_v not_o questionable_a not_o mere_o because_o the_o catholic_n have_v more_o belong_v to_o it_o as_o some_o will_v have_v we_o judge_v of_o religion_n by_o count_a nose_n but_o as_o optatus_n say_v quia_fw-la rationalis_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la diffusa_fw-la because_o the_o due_a reason_n why_o man_n be_v christian_n sway_v man_n to_o stand_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n all_o over_o the_o undue_a reason_n that_o move_v man_n to_o break_v with_o it_o prevail_v but_o here_o and_o there_o at_o all_o hand_n discount_v haereticke_n and_o schismatickes_n who_o they_o that_o follow_v do_v seldom_o approve_v so_o many_o christian_n so_o many_o witness_n of_o one_o catholic_n church_n which_o by_o be_v catholic_n be_v always_o and_o must_v needs_o be_v visible_a and_o thus_o far_o we_o have_v the_o same_o evidence_n for_o one_o visible_a church_n as_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o christianity_n after_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n the_o reputation_n of_o nestorius_n hold_v same_o the_o breach_n that_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v evidence_n the_o same_o entire_a in_o the_o east_n notwithstanding_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n have_v preserve_v we_o no_o intelligence_n how_o or_o by_o what_o mean_v those_o that_o write_v of_o the_o war_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n afterward_o represeut_fw-fr we_o the_o nestorian_n in_o the_o east_n so_o numerous_a as_o may_v well_o stumble_v those_o that_o pretend_v to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n by_o the_o poll_n in_o our_o western_a part_n but_o whether_o the_o breach_n stand_v upon_o the_o opinion_n or_o upon_o the_o person_n of_o nestorius_n be_v more_o than_o i_o be_o able_a to_o decide_v for_o in_o egypt_n likewise_o after_o many_o trouble_n about_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o condemn_v of_o their_o
bishop_n dioscorus_n by_o it_o at_o length_n these_o church_n be_v count_v jacobite_n from_o the_o name_n of_o one_o jacobus_n zanzalus_n or_o little_a jacob_n of_o syria_n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v teach_v they_o the_o position_n of_o eutyches_n condemn_v by_o that_o council_n whether_o so_o or_o whether_o a_o fond_a zeal_n for_o the_o reputation_n of_o dioscorus_n have_v serve_v to_o divide_v that_o people_n from_o the_o church_n upon_o a_o mere_a difference_n in_o term_n the_o breach_n still_o continue_v and_o the_o abyssine_n depend_v always_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n be_v say_v to_o continue_v in_o it_o since_o that_o what_o breach_n of_o intercourse_n and_o communion_n have_v fall_v out_o between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n or_o upon_o what_o cause_n and_o how_o far_o it_o continue_v i_o need_v not_o relate_v but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n that_o it_o dispose_v these_o western_a part_n to_o that_o breach_n which_o the_o reformation_n have_v make_v within_o the_o reformation_n i_o need_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o division_n between_o the_o calvinist_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o lutheran_n in_o the_o empire_n the_o arminian_o in_o the_o law_n country_n on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o be_o only_o this_o to_o demadn_v do_v ever_o any_o of_o these_o party_n declare_v that_o the_o visible_a unity_n which_o these_o breach_n interrupt_v be_v not_o god_n ordinance_n that_o one_o of_o the_o party_n be_v not_o always_o guilty_a to_o god_n for_o the_o mischief_n of_o schism_n that_o christian_a charity_n be_v not_o high_o concern_v in_o violate_v that_o communion_n which_o christianity_n enact_v until_o the_o dregs_o of_o our_o time_n i_o do_v not_o know_v that_o it_o be_v ever_o dispute_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o be_v member_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o visible_a church_n i_o have_v already_o say_v that_o the_o reformation_n be_v not_o make_v by_o common_a consent_n i_o must_v now_o acknowledge_v further_o that_o it_o proceed_v not_o express_o upon_o the_o profession_n of_o one_o visible_a church_n though_o neither_o deny_v nor_o question_v the_o same_o no_o marvel_n then_o if_o in_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o confine_v to_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n that_o dissension_n have_v fall_v out_o in_o it_o no_o marvel_n that_o they_o who_o dare_v not_o look_v so_o clear_a a_o principle_n in_o the_o face_n can_v wrangle_v out_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n upon_o petty_a scruple_n which_o the_o admit_v of_o it_o must_v needs_o present_o disperse_v chap._n vii_o reformation_n to_o be_v bound_v by_o that_o wherein_o the_o visible_a church_n agree_v no_o change_n without_o regard_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n regular_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mean_n of_o unity_n absolute_a of_o schism_n how_o we_o be_v visible_o one_o with_o the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n reform_v without_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n where_o episcopacy_n stand_v agree_v reformation_n to_o be_v bound_v by_o that_o wherein_o the_o visible_a church_n agree_v settle_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o right_n of_o good_n consecrate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n by_o invest_v they_o upon_o his_o church_n be_v maintain_v by_o the_o same_o be_v we_o not_o to_o fear_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n if_o in_o all_o thing_n of_o religion_n we_o meet_v not_o by_o the_o same_o standard_n if_o we_o weigh_v not_o by_o the_o same_o weight_n can_v we_o pretend_v to_o weigh_v by_o the_o same_o weight_n unless_o we_o admit_v the_o whole_a faith_n and_o all_o the_o law_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n unless_o we_o confine_v the_o reformation_n to_o the_o restore_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v without_o introduce_v that_o which_o can_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v man_n see_v new_a fanfy_v every_o day_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o same_o man_n see_v not_o to_o morrow_n another_o man_n never_o see_v the_o profession_n of_o faith_n the_o rule_n of_o government_n the_o rite_n of_o god_n service_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o must_v make_v a_o church_n a_o part_n or_o no_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o if_o the_o church_n be_v a_o visible_a body_n it_o must_v be_v visible_a by_o the_o law_n which_o it_o use_v and_o if_o it_o be_v to_o continue_v one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o second_o come_v of_o our_o lord_n the_o law_n of_o it_o will_v necessary_o change_v as_o the_o law_n of_o all_o body_n do_v but_o the_o authority_n whence_o they_o proceed_v must_v needs_o continue_v the_o same_o if_o corruption_n and_o abuse_n be_v to_o be_v reform_v and_o those_o in_o who_o the_o authority_n visible_o rest_v agree_v not_o restore_a that_o which_o be_v you_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n for_o the_o revive_n of_o their_o act_n introduce_v that_o which_o be_v not_o you_o go_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o fanatickes_n the_o dictate_v whereof_o appear_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n in_o fine_a mater_fw-la of_o faith_n be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n the_o same_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v always_o from_o the_o beginning_n profess_v if_o you_o impose_v more_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v have_v a_o better_a pretence_n than_o you_o can_v have_v namely_o a_o better_a claim_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v a_o imposture_n to_o induce_v any_o man_n to_o think_v that_o profess_v christianity_n they_o can_v renounce_v the_o scripture_n the_o issue_n be_v and_o will_v be_v whether_o you_o or_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v judge_n until_o you_o distinguish_v between_o the_o present_a church_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n not_o contest_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o present_a church_n so_o far_o as_o it_o hold_v with_o the_o whole_a but_o in_o matter_n of_o church_n law_n which_o for_o the_o reason_n that_o have_v be_v say_v be_v necessary_o changeable_a though_o the_o difference_n of_o time_n and_o the_o estate_n of_o thing_n will_v not_o endure_v the_o restore_n of_o primitive_a discipline_n yet_o shall_v it_o be_v easy_a thereby_o to_o discern_v what_o be_v abate_v for_o unity_n sake_n what_o be_v reject_v because_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o law_n of_o it_o be_v not_o own_v and_o upon_o these_o term_n it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o answer_v all_o demand_n church_n no_o change_n without_o regard_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n not_o only_o here_o but_o at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n at_o which_o otherwise_o the_o account_n can_v be_v clear_a they_o that_o will_v have_v it_o think_v that_o the_o mischief_n which_o we_o have_v see_v have_v not_o be_v act_v for_o nothing_o will_v have_v the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n change_v to_o give_v they_o content_a without_o consider_v what_o cause_n we_o give_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o take_v we_o for_o schismatickes_n balk_v the_o whole_a church_n that_o we_o may_v be_v reconcile_v to_o those_o that_o have_v break_v from_o we_o for_o suppose_v for_o the_o present_a though_o not_o grant_v that_o all_o papist_n be_v idolater_n and_o the_o pope_n antichrist_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v nevertheless_o as_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v a_o part_n of_o christian_a truth_n nor_o can_v papist_n be_v idolater_n or_o the_o pope_n antichrist_n for_o believe_v any_o thing_n which_o the_o whole_a church_n believe_v for_o command_v or_o for_o practise_v that_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v command_v or_o practise_v nay_o not_o for_o that_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o any_o age_n have_v allow_v part_n of_o the_o church_n to_o practice_n for_o god_n forbid_v it_o shall_v be_v say_v which_o it_o be_v senseless_a to_o imagine_v that_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n shall_v own_o part_n of_o it_o for_o christian_n be_v indeed_o idolater_n and_o partisan_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n must_v have_v be_v utter_o lose_v in_o that_o case_n and_o the_o reform_v of_o it_o must_v not_o be_v the_o mend_n of_o the_o old_a church_n but_o the_o make_n of_o a_o new_a church_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o enough_o for_o these_o man_n to_o allege_v the_o ancient_a church_n in_o any_o particular_a they_o must_v weigh_v by_o their_o own_o weight_n and_o mete_v by_o their_o own_o standard_n if_o they_o will_v not_o fall_v under_o god_n curse_n they_o that_o stand_v not_o to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o thing_n answer_v themselves_o when_o they_o allege_v it_o nay_o they_o may_v invite_v we_o to_o be_v schismatickes_n for_o their_o sake_n in_o that_o for_o which_o they_o true_o allege_v the_o ancient_a
can_v serve_v for_o his_o discharge_n to_o god_n he_o be_v answerable_a to_o god_n notwithstanding_o any_o such_o advice_n for_o any_o wrong_n that_o the_o privilege_n and_o penalty_n otherwise_o enact_v may_v do_v but_o maintain_v first_o the_o express_a profession_n of_o the_o rule_n hitherto_o establish_v bound_v all_o reformation_n of_o the_o present_a church_n by_o that_o which_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n either_o allow_v or_o require_v then_o maintain_v they_o in_o their_o office_n who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o form_v that_o which_o his_o act_n must_v make_v law_n to_o his_o subject_n there_o will_v need_v no_o more_o for_o his_o discharge_n to_o god_n than_o the_o use_n of_o that_o judgement_n which_o god_n have_v endow_v he_o with_o to_o discern_v whether_o the_o rule_n which_o he_o protect_v be_v due_o apply_v to_o that_o which_o he_o enact_v or_o not_o for_o as_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v excuse_v to_o god_n transgress_v that_o which_o it_o see_v so_o in_o thing_n doubtful_a to_o prefer_v any_o reason_n before_o that_o which_o god_n trust_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o such_o trust_n be_v to_o render_v a_o man_n self_n accountable_a to_o god_n for_o that_o wrong_n which_o may_v be_v do_v for_o which_o otherwise_o those_o that_o be_v trust_v by_o god_n shall_v be_v accountable_a chap._n ix_o difficulty_n in_o receive_v the_o fanatic_n into_o this_o church_n how_o their_o position_n destroy_v the_o faith_n absolute_a praedestination_n to_o glory_n destructive_a to_o christianity_n justify_v faith_n include_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n the_o nature_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n show_v the_o same_o so_o do_v the_o state_n of_o that_o question_n which_o st_n paul_n dispute_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n herein_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o church_n but_o i_o must_v now_o profess_v that_o the_o weighty_a point_n in_o reunite_v church_n difficulty_n in_o receive_v the_o fanatic_n into_o this_o church_n the_o breach_n of_o religion_n in_o this_o church_n be_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o the_o fanatic_n may_v be_v either_o reconcile_v to_o it_o or_o shut_v out_o of_o it_o whether_o with_o free_a exercise_n of_o their_o several_a sect_n or_o under_o certain_a penalty_n as_o recusant_n i_o see_v that_o they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o pretend_v a_o further_a liberty_n of_o public_a preacher_n even_o since_o the_o law_n of_o this_o land_n be_v in_o force_n for_o i_o find_v that_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v not_o minister_n of_o congregation_n do_v notwithstanding_o style_v themselves_o public_a preacher_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o then_o to_o pretend_v that_o authority_n from_o the_o secular_a power_n which_o they_o have_v by_o the_o late_a usurpation_n to_o seduce_v as_o many_o of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n as_o they_o can_v to_o their_o conventicle_n but_o that_o i_o will_v say_v nothing_o of_o because_o i_o make_v certain_a account_n that_o whensoever_o we_o come_v to_o any_o settlement_n in_o religion_n they_o will_v find_v that_o their_o pretence_n to_o be_v vain_a that_o which_o i_o insist_v upon_o be_v that_o which_o i_o conceive_v i_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o position_n which_o they_o notorious_o challenge_v be_v downright_a heresy_n want_v only_a conviction_n to_o produce_v either_o conversion_n or_o contumacy_n and_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o same_o for_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o they_o challenge_v the_o present_a endowment_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o future_a upon_o no_o further_a consideration_n then_o of_o their_o person_n as_o not_o depend_v upon_o the_o christianity_n which_o they_o either_o profess_v or_o perform_v so_o far_o they_o be_v from_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o depend_v upon_o their_o be_v member_n of_o god_n church_n by_o live_v according_a to_o that_o christianity_n which_o it_o profess_v for_o because_o they_o think_v themselves_o member_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o be_v member_n of_o god_n church_n therefore_o they_o think_v themselves_o enable_v by_o god_n to_o divide_v the_o church_n in_o infinitum_fw-la and_o that_o the_o conventicle_n of_o their_o congregation_n be_v church_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n with_o those_o which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o profess_v not_o the_o faith_n though_o they_o renounce_v the_o unity_n of_o one_o visible_a church_n therefore_o they_o open_o allow_v those_o who_o maintain_v that_o god_n can_v see_v no_o sin_n in_o his_o elect_n that_o their_o sin_n be_v pardon_v from_o everlasting_a before_o they_o be_v do_v that_o god_n shall_v not_o judge_v by_o our_o work_n but_o by_o his_o own_o decree_n that_o there_o be_v inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o the_o word_n though_o not_o against_o it_o for_o dear_a member_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o cream_n of_o christian_n and_o hence_o come_v the_o everlasting_a division_n which_o they_o maintain_v for_o to_o renounce_v those_o bound_n which_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o unity_n thereof_o fix_v be_v enough_o to_o commend_v they_o to_o all_o party_n that_o do_v so_o for_o the_o godly_a in_o fine_a the_o whole_a fry_n of_o this_o error_n resolve_v itself_o in_o two_o position_n that_o god_n praedestinate_v to_o salvation_n mere_o in_o consideration_n of_o man_n person_n and_o not_o of_o any_o christianity_n which_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v profess_v and_o perform_v and_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o praedestination_n reveal_v by_o the_o word_n and_o seal_v by_o the_o spirit_n immediate_o not_o suppose_v the_o christianity_n which_o they_o profess_v and_o perform_v be_v that_o faith_n which_o only_o justifi_v i_o can_v say_v that_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v express_o profess_v these_o faith_n how_o their_o position_n destroy_v the_o faith_n position_n for_o they_o have_v a_o express_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o express_v they_o not_o but_o see_v they_o in_o all_o occasion_n of_o public_a confusion_n render_v themselves_o considerable_a by_o these_o fanatic_n as_o be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o party_n i_o must_v take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o they_o think_v their_o profession_n reconcileable_a with_o these_o position_n especial_o know_v how_o many_o particular_a divine_n and_o preacher_n of_o that_o party_n have_v maintain_v the_o same_o namely_o all_o that_o maintain_v justify_v faith_n and_o the_o knowledge_n and_o assurance_n of_o a_o man_n salvation_n without_o and_o before_o repentance_n i_o do_v not_o then_o say_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o absolute_a praedestination_n be_v heresy_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n because_o it_o may_v be_v hold_v with_o other_o position_n which_o be_v a_o antidote_n to_o the_o venom_n of_o it_o as_o be_v real_o contradictory_n to_o it_o which_o contradiction_n do_v those_o that_o hold_v it_o perceive_v they_o can_v not_o hold_v it_o for_o this_o contradiction_n suffer_v not_o the_o consequence_n of_o heresy_n to_o take_v effect_n but_o both_o position_n together_o i_o have_v maintain_v to_o be_v downright_a heresy_n neither_o have_v i_o be_v show_v or_o of_o myself_o discover_v any_o reason_n sufficient_a to_o think_v otherwise_o and_o therefore_o i_o must_v continue_v to_o weigh_v by_o my_o own_o weight_n and_o to_o mete_v by_o my_o own_o measure_n for_o that_o the_o ground_n and_o substance_n of_o christianity_n be_v utter_o christianity_n absolute_a praedestination_n to_o glory_n destructive_a to_o christianity_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o decree_n which_o they_o imagine_v be_v manifest_a if_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v manifest_a in_o christianity_n because_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o decree_n than_o can_v not_o man_n be_v judge_v at_o the_o last_o day_n as_o judge_v they_o shall_v be_v by_o their_o work_n there_o be_v no_o decree_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v execute_v if_o god_n decree_v from_o everlasting_a to_o give_v glory_n and_o torment_v for_o everlasting_a without_o consideration_n of_o man_n work_n then_o must_v he_o without_o such_o consideration_n give_v it_o in_o time_n for_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v not_o execute_v that_o which_o he_o decree_v and_o indeed_o such_o a_o decree_n can_v no_o way_n be_v undefeasible_a as_o all_o god_n decree_n must_v be_v unless_o god_n determine_v and_o move_v every_o man_n to_o every_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v every_o moment_n of_o his_o life_n upon_o the_o account_n whereof_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v or_o damn_v and_o that_o before_o his_o own_o will_v determine_v or_o move_v itself_o but_o if_o god_n shall_v so_o determine_v and_o move_v man_n will_n than_o will_v the_o tender_a of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o mere_a abuse_n and_o a_o mockery_n invite_v mankind_n to_o salvation_n upon_o a_o condition_n which_o unless_o god_n determine_v and_o move_v he_o to_o perform_v he_o can_v if_o he_o do_v he_o can_v but_o perform_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n proceed_n at_o
the_o last_o day_n stand_v upon_o this_o that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v transgress_v that_o for_o which_o he_o be_v reward_v or_o punish_v and_o the_o obligation_n of_o christianity_n in_o this_o that_o by_o the_o help_n which_o it_o tender_v a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o which_o it_o require_v again_o if_o we_o may_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o effect_n of_o our_o christianity_n the_o endowment_n of_o god_n spirit_n here_o and_o everlasting_a salvation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v before_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o we_o have_v perform_v it_o how_o can_v we_o be_v oblige_v either_o to_o profess_v or_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o it_o be_v to_o no_o effect_n either_o to_o profess_v or_o to_o perform_v if_o the_o effect_n be_v have_v without_o either_o profess_v or_o perform_v it_o for_o i_o challenge_v the_o common_a reason_n of_o man_n to_o question_v this_o that_o no_o effect_n can_v depend_v upon_o any_o condition_n which_o a_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a of_o before_o he_o be_v sure_a whether_o he_o have_v the_o condition_n or_o not_o so_o that_o he_o that_o be_v sure_a of_o his_o salvation_n before_o he_o be_v sure_a whether_o he_o be_v a_o good_a christian_a or_o not_o can_v think_v it_o a_o condition_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o he_o be_v a_o good_a christian_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o think_v that_o he_o may_v be_v save_v without_o be_v a_o good_a christian_n nor_o will_v it_o serve_v the_o turn_n to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o therefore_o save_v without_o be_v a_o good_a christian_a because_o if_o he_o be_v so_o assure_v he_o be_v also_o assure_v that_o god_n will_v make_v he_o a_o good_a christian_n for_o in_o that_o case_n christianity_n will_v not_o be_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o the_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n shall_v depend_v but_o a_o mean_a by_o which_o god_n will_v save_v he_o who_o he_o shall_v decree_v to_o save_v upon_o no_o condition_n of_o be_v a_o christian_n whereas_o if_o christianity_n be_v true_a and_o if_o god_n shall_v judge_v we_o by_o our_o work_n we_o must_v be_v save_v by_o perform_v that_o christianity_n which_o we_o be_v to_o profess_v and_o not_o otherwise_o for_o i_o must_v here_o begin_v where_o i_o leave_v afore_o when_o i_o say_v that_o christianity_n justify_v faith_n include_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n they_o who_o define_v justify_v faith_n without_o include_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n in_o it_o do_v mistake_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v a_o christian_a for_o they_o who_o be_v call_v disciple_n of_o christ_n afore_o be_v call_v christian_n at_o antiochia_n without_o take_v up_o christ_n cross_n that_o be_v profess_v to_o die_v for_o christianity_n if_o it_o be_v requisite_a if_o not_o to_o forgo_v any_o advantage_n of_o this_o world_n which_o a_o man_n can_v hold_v do_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a christian_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o inward_a belief_n of_o the_o heart_n but_o the_o outward_a profession_n of_o the_o mouth_n that_o render_v a_o christian_a liable_a to_o christ_n cross_n for_o can_v a_o man_n be_v save_v deny_v christ_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o he_o shall_v suffer_v for_o christ_n see_v therefore_o that_o christ_n manifest_o require_v a_o christian_n to_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o justification_n which_o christianity_n promise_v be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v without_o profess_v christianity_n who_o ever_o believe_v it_o but_o the_o disciple_n of_o simon_n magus_n the_o gnosticke_n that_o will_v needs_o go_v for_o christian_n with_o christian_n but_o do_v as_o jew_n or_o gentile_n do_v to_o avoid_v persecution_n from_o jew_n or_o gentile_n with_o the_o heart_n a_o man_n believe_v to_o righteousness_n say_v st._n paul_n good_a reason_n for_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n send_v our_o lord_n to_o preach_v that_o righteousness_n which_o christianity_n profess_v must_v be_v a_o strange_a creature_n if_o he_o find_v not_o himself_o oblige_v to_o the_o righteousness_n which_o god_n send_v he_o to_o preach_v but_o it_o be_v inherent_a righteousness_n to_o which_o the_o belief_n of_o christ_n message_n and_o commission_n induce_v that_o righteousness_n to_o which_o salvation_n belong_v by_o that_o positive_a will_n of_o god_n which_o his_o gospel_n declare_v be_v a_o attribute_n which_o the_o say_v gracious_a will_n of_o god_n allow_v when_o the_o worth_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n can_v challenge_v it_o therefore_o with_o the_o mouth_n a_o man_n profess_v to_o salvation_n say_v st._n paul_n the_o positive_a will_n of_o god_n have_v tie_v the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o future_a and_o justification_n the_o title_n to_o salvation_n for_o the_o present_a to_o the_o positive_a act_n of_o profess_v christianity_n not_o to_o the_o perpetual_a obligation_n of_o all_o righteousness_n and_o therefore_o this_o profession_n be_v not_o necessary_a till_o our_o saviour_n command_v to_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n at_o his_o go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n not_o that_o before_o that_o time_n the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v save_v deny_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n but_o because_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n be_v not_o proper_o the_o condition_n of_o salvation_n till_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n be_v institute_v till_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v to_o make_v man_n christian_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o that_o christ_n have_v give_v they_o in_o charge_n by_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o by_o this_o precept_n wherein_o the_o sum_n and_o substance_n of_o christianity_n consist_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v require_v for_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o gospel_n before_o be_v limit_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n for_o matter_n of_o belief_n though_o extend_v to_o all_o that_o our_o lord_n have_v teach_v afore_o concern_v the_o life_n of_o a_o christian_n and_o herewith_o agree_v the_o doctrine_n of_o st._n peter_n 1_o pet._n iii_o 20._o ascribe_v salvation_n to_o baptism_n not_o in_o regard_n of_o cleanse_v the_o flesh_n which_o be_v the_o outward_a ceremony_n but_o of_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n when_o it_o be_v make_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n whereby_o a_o man_n solemn_o undertake_v that_o righteousness_n which_o christianity_n require_v and_o hereupon_o the_o belief_n of_o one_o catholic_n church_n become_v a_o part_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n as_o the_o sound_n of_o it_o become_v a_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o make_v salvation_n to_o consist_v in_o profess_v christianity_n for_o as_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o think_v that_o any_o man_n can_v attain_v salvation_n by_o make_v that_o profession_n which_o out_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n he_o intend_v not_o to_o perform_v so_o be_v it_o ridiculous_a to_o think_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v attain_v the_o state_n of_o salvation_n by_o prefess_v that_o for_o christianity_n which_o the_o profession_n of_o one_o catholic_n church_n of_o god_n do_v not_o allow_v add_v hereunto_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o name_n and_o nature_n of_o same_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n show_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o the_o attribute_n and_o effect_n that_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o it_o in_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o faith_n signify_v common_o the_o belief_n of_o christ_n gospel_n it_o signify_v also_o oft_o enough_o trust_v and_o confidence_n in_o god_n and_o that_o through_o our_o lord_n christ_n when_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n be_v mean_v but_o the_o one_o of_o these_o go_v before_o justification_n the_o other_o come_v after_o and_o presuppose_v it_o for_o who_o will_v undertake_v that_o all_o those_o who_o believe_v that_o christ_n gospel_n be_v true_a be_v justify_v though_o they_o live_v not_o as_o it_o require_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v but_o he_o that_o so_o believe_v now_o trust_v in_o god_n be_v either_o confidence_n that_o god_n will_v be_v or_o that_o he_o be_v reconcile_v the_o gospel_n be_v sufficient_a ground_n of_o assurance_n that_o god_n will_v be_v reconcile_v with_o whosoever_o will_v undertake_v the_o condition_n which_o it_o require_v but_o he_o that_o have_v this_o confidence_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o it_o but_o by_o undertake_v the_o condition_n which_o it_o require_v therefore_o he_o have_v this_o confidence_n before_o he_o be_v justify_v for_o be_v once_o justify_v he_o have_v ground_n to_o trust_v in_o god_n as_o reconcile_v but_o he_o must_v be_v justify_v before_o this_o confidence_n can_v be_v well_o ground_v for_o otherwise_o it_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o justify_v that_o he_o
the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o void_a not_o be_v minister_v as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o offence_n be_v give_v by_o he_o that_o so_o minister_v it_o as_o the_o performance_n of_o christianity_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n eucharist_n what_o c●n●●r●●_n salvation_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n of_o he_o that_o first_o attain_v the_o state_n of_o salvation_n by_o undertake_v christianity_n so_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o he_o that_o be_v come_v to_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a then_o be_v it_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n to_o profess_v and_o for_o all_o christian_n to_o know_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o eucharist_n depend_v upon_o the_o sincerity_n of_o that_o resolution_n wherewith_o he_o that_o receive_v it_o stand_v to_o his_o christianity_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o so_o do_v he_o fail_v not_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o sacrament_n and_o by_o consequence_n of_o his_o spirit_n which_o it_o convey_v if_o therefore_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n then_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o this_o effect_n that_o it_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o god_n church_n for_o otherwise_o no_o man_n need_v to_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v void_a that_o it_o be_v celebrate_v and_o receive_v to_o no_o effect_n see_v it_o be_v celebrate_v and_o receive_v to_o so_o bad_a effect_n as_o to_o make_v all_o that_o come_v to_o it_o guilty_a of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n i_o claim_v further_o that_o see_v it_o can_v be_v no_o sound_a part_n of_o god_n n●ssene_n how_o the_o element_n be_v consecrate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o gregory_n n●ssene_n church_n that_o observe_v not_o all_o the_o law_n of_o god_n whole_a church_n if_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o that_o mean_n by_o which_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v always_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n than_o it_o be_v not_o celebrate_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o god_n church_n now_o i_o conceive_v i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o consecrate_v by_o these_o bare_a word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n as_o operatory_n in_o change_v the_o element_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o by_o that_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o have_v declare_v the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o command_v the_o use_n of_o it_o and_o by_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o command_n now_o it_o be_v execute_v and_o have_v always_o be_v execute_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o god_n word_n of_o institution_n pray_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o present_a element_n may_v make_v they_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o by_o change_v they_o into_o the_o nature_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o nourish_v our_o lord_n christ_n on_o earth_n become_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o become_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o manhood_n hypostatical_o unite_v to_o his_o godhead_n say_v s._n gregory_n nyssene_n but_o immediate_o and_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la by_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v his_o godhead_n for_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o incarnation_n the_o element_n by_o consecration_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n become_v both_o one_o sacramental_o by_o be_v both_o one_o with_o the_o spirit_n or_o godhead_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o convey_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o a_o christian_n this_o doctrine_n of_o s._n gregory_n nyssene_n ground_v upon_o the_o form_n eucharist_n the_o consequence_n hereof_o in_o the_o error_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n of_o consecrate_v use_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n seem_v to_o i_o to_o make_v good_a all_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v teach_v concern_v this_o sacrament_n whereas_o no_o other_o term_n be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o that_o without_o enter_v into_o any_o dispute_n concern_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o element_n but_o secure_v first_o that_o which_o the_o common_a salvation_n require_v in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o it_o by_o impute_v the_o presence_n of_o they_o to_o the_o consecration_n not_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o that_o receive_v it_o condemn_v the_o error_n of_o transubstantiation_n make_v the_o change_n mystical_a and_o immediate_a upon_o the_o come_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o the_o element_n the_o nature_n of_o they_o remain_v but_o it_o condemn_v consubstantiation_n for_o no_o less_o for_o what_o need_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n fill_v the_o same_o dimension_n which_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o element_n possess_v both_o be_v unite_v with_o his_o spirit_n and_o true_o they_o that_o invite_v the_o lutheran_n to_o their_o communion_n profess_v consubstantiation_n must_v not_o make_v transubstantiation_n a_o error_n in_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n if_o they_o will_v weigh_v by_o their_o own_o weight_n and_o mete_v by_o their_o own_o measure_n but_o if_o the_o error_n of_o the_o fanatic_n when_o they_o make_v the_o assurance_n of_o a_o man_n praedestination_n to_o be_v justify_v faith_n be_v a_o error_n in_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n as_o i_o have_v show_v that_o it_o be_v then_o it_o be_v a_o error_n in_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n to_o take_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a sign_n to_o confirm_v that_o faith_n and_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n not_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o the_o consecration_n be_v make_v and_o do_v but_o by_o this_o faith_n in_o he_o that_o receive_v and_o therefore_o this_o error_n be_v enough_o to_o render_v the_o sacrament_n no_o sacrament_n which_o be_v celebrate_v profess_v it_o the_o word_n no_o word_n of_o god_n that_o teach_v to_o celebrate_v such_o sacrament_n the_o church_n no_o church_n that_o profess_v it_o or_o communicate_v with_o they_o that_o profess_v it_o my_o inference_n be_v unavoidable_a that_o to_o justify_v this_o church_n a_o member_n of_o god_n only_o true_a church_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v readmit_v into_o it_o without_o express_o acknowledge_v the_o christianity_n which_o we_o undertake_v by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n if_o the_o consecrate_a element_n be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n mass_n how_o the_o eucharist_n a_o sacrifice_n and_o yet_o no_o ground_n for_o private_a mass_n then_o be_v they_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n crucify_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o they_o be_v not_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o his_o body_n while_o it_o be_v whole_a but_o as_o separate_v by_o the_o passion_n of_o his_o cross_n not_o that_o christ_n can_v be_v sacrifice_v again_o for_o a_o sacrifice_n be_v a_o action_n do_v in_o succession_n of_o time_n can_v be_v do_v the_o second_o time_n be_v once_o do_v because_o than_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v do_v before_o but_o because_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n crucify_v be_v represent_v commemorate_a and_o apply_v by_o celebrate_v and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v that_o sacrifice_n they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o will_v make_v the_o breach_n wide_o than_o it_o be_v do_v but_o justify_v the_o reformation_n by_o force_v any_o other_o reason_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n expound_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o god_n church_n and_o they_o which_o stumble_v at_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o priesthood_n which_o this_o sacrifice_n infer_v plain_o they_o invite_v we_o to_o renounce_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o their_o sake_n and_o how_o much_o christianity_n they_o will_v leave_v we_o when_o that_o be_v do_v who_o will_v undertake_v thus_o much_o for_o certain_a upon_o these_o term_n the_o virtue_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o to_o be_v apply_v by_o the_o secret_a and_o private_a intent_n of_o the_o priest_n direct_v his_o action_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o live_v or_o dead_a whether_o present_a or_o absent_a whether_o concur_v to_o the_o celebrate_n and_o receive_v of_o it_o or_o not_o so_o much_o as_o think_v themselves_o concern_v so_o to_o do_v it_o be_v not_o apply_v but_o by_o the_o devotion_n of_o they_o who_o either_o receive_v it_o when_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o receive_v or_o concur_v to_o the_o celebrate_n of_o it_o when_o they_o be_v not_o whether_o priest_n or_o people_n
and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o private_a mass_n by_o grant_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v in_o this_o nature_n a_o sacrifice_n but_o can_v any_o man_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a office_n of_o service_n the_o eucharist_n not_o the_o sermon_n the_o chief_a office_n of_o god_n service_n christian_a assembly_n that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v frequent_v upon_o all_o the_o chief_a occasion_n for_o the_o assembly_n of_o god_n church_n that_o the_o ordinary_a work_n for_o which_o we_o meet_v all_o lord_n day_n and_o other_o day_n if_o on_o other_o day_n we_o ought_v ordinary_o and_o solemn_o to_o meet_v be_v a_o sermon_n with_o a_o arbitrary_a prayer_n before_o or_o after_o it_o that_o they_o who_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o minister_v the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v excuse_v of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n or_o minister_a the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o unless_o it_o be_v three_o or_o four_o time_n a_o year_n and_o much_o more_o of_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o praise_v god_n upon_o david_n psalter_n and_o the_o hymn_n of_o the_o church_n i_o confess_v calvin_n reformation_n be_v much_o after_o that_o form_n and_o all_o the_o ar●_n of_o the_o bless_a reformation_n here_o pretend_v have_v be_v to_o impose_v it_o for_o a_o law_n upon_o this_o kingdom_n without_o once_o plead_v that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o best_a but_o so_o gross_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o common_a christianity_n that_o it_o be_v injurious_a to_o fear_v that_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n can_v suffer_v such_o a_o imposture_n derogate_a far_o more_o from_o the_o perpetual_a custom_n of_o god_n whole_a church_n than_o it_o can_v from_o the_o present_a law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n that_o therefore_o i_o may_v make_v way_n to_o the_o determine_n of_o that_o which_o remain_v most_o questionable_a among_o we_o what_o be_v the_o best_a form_n of_o service_n which_o the_o church_n of_o this_o kingdom_n can_v worship_n god_n with_o i_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n lay_v down_o that_o rule_n by_o which_o all_o reformation_n of_o law_n ecclesiastical_a be_v to_o be_v direct_v together_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o chap._n xv._o the_o ground_n that_o determine_v the_o form_n of_o our_o service_n the_o office_n of_o which_o the_o service_n be_v to_o consist_v of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o psalm_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n common_o call_v apocrypha_fw-la what_o preach_v it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n commend_v there_o may_v be_v preach_v without_o sermon_n and_o sermon_n without_o preach_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o second_o service_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o our_o communion_n service_n the_o general_a preface_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o eucharist_n the_o prayer_n of_o oblation_n institute_v by_o s._n paul_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o the_o lord_n prayer_n at_o the_o eucharist_n the_o place_n for_o the_o common_a prayer_n that_o ground_n upon_o which_o the_o form_n of_o our_o service_n be_v to_o be_v service_n the_o ground_n that_o determine_v the_o form_n of_o ou●_n service_n determine_v be_v to_o determine_v all_o that_o remain_v to_o be_v determine_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v but_o out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o antiquity_n especial_o of_o god_n ancient_a people_n f●●st_n and_o then_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n the_o obligation_n of_o that_o sense_n upon_o the_o church_n at_o this_o time_n be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v against_o the_o primitive_a practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o restore_n of_o that_o which_o may_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v in_o force_n especial_o since_o christianity_n have_v be_v protect_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n because_o the_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o christianity_n and_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o state_n of_o persecution_n and_o of_o protection_n by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n it_o be_v therefore_o necessary_a that_o both_o side_n profess_v the_o reformation_n shall_v agree_v upon_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o reformation_n and_o so_o upon_o the_o rule_n which_o that_o ground_n will_v maintain_v and_o evidence_n that_o be_v to_o submit_v all_o that_o be_v in_o question_n to_o the_o visible_a practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n before_o those_o abuse_n be_v bring_v in_o which_o the_o reformation_n pretend_v to_o restore_v for_o if_o god_n have_v found_v a_o visible_a church_n which_o all_o this_o suppose_n then_o can_v the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n idolater_n for_o any_o thing_n which_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n justifi_v and_o see_v the_o church_n be_v visible_a by_o the_o law_n of_o it_o there_o can_v no_o church_n be_v visible_o one_o with_o that_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n but_o by_o rule_v itself_o by_o the_o same_o law_n so_o far_o as_o the_o state_n of_o the_o body_n for_o which_o they_o be_v make_v be_v the_o same_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v say_v concern_v the_o form_n of_o our_o service_n be_v a_o instance_n hereof_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o have_v be_v allege_v shall_v appear_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o primitive_a order_n of_o god_n church_n the_o revive_n of_o the_o order_n be_v the_o point_n of_o reformation_n in_o this_o particular_a allow_v for_o avoid_v just_a offence_n in_o alter_v the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n without_o necessary_a cause_n as_o the_o wisdom_n of_o superior_n shall_v find_v requisite_a i_o must_v now_o suppose_v that_o the_o office_n of_o god_n service_n for_o consist_v the_o office_n of_o which_o the_o service_n be_v to_o consist_v which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n assemble_v ordinary_o and_o solemn_o be_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o christianity_n whether_o by_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o by_o handle_v the_o same_o and_o last_o the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o those_o which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o and_o this_o order_n which_o i_o put_v they_o in_o here_o be_v that_o which_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v always_o observe_v the_o psalter_n of_o david_n in_o the_o first_o place_n have_v be_v so_o general_o psalm_n o●_n the_o use_n of_o the_o psalm_n frequent_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o instrument_n to_o make_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n sound_v forth_o that_o it_o ought_v not_o now_o to_o be_v question_v as_o question_v it_o be_v visible_o enough_o by_o any_o that_o will_v pretend_v to_o be_v of_o god_n church_n the_o order_n of_o read_v the_o psalm_n which_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n require_v be_v admit_v because_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o all_o endeavour_n use_v that_o no_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n be_v exercise_v by_o it_o the_o psalm_n in_o rhyme_n must_v engross_v that_o we_o have_v see_v a_o civil_a war_n in_o the_o time_n whereof_o these_o psalm_n in_o rhyme_n be_v crowd_v into_o the_o church_n by_o mere_a sufferance_n and_o so_o use_v without_o order_n of_o law_n have_v be_v employ_v on_o both_o side_n to_o brand_v the_o adverse_a party_n with_o the_o mark_n which_o the_o psalm_n set_v upon_o the_o enemy_n of_o david_n and_o of_o god_n people_n that_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o christian_n more_o free_o by_o they_o who_o sing_v they_o at_o the_o head_n of_o their_o army_n to_o that_o purpose_n i_o hope_v those_o way_n do_v not_o please_v at_o present_a and_o therefore_o say_v free_o that_o the_o disorder_n ought_v not_o to_o continue_v some_o of_o our_o fanatic_n i_o know_v have_v tear_v they_o out_o of_o their_o bibles_n they_o think_v themselves_o not_o concern_v in_o they_o though_o david_n be_v the_o jew_n though_o they_o allow_v many_o of_o they_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o messiah_n will_v not_o have_v they_o belong_v to_o our_o lord_n christ_n but_o the_o church_n use_v they_o suppose_v they_o all_o fulfil_v in_o christ_n and_o christian_n whether_o particular_a soul_n or_o the_o body_n of_o his_o church_n upon_o this_o account_n they_o be_v the_o exercise_n of_o christian_a devotion_n but_o not_o the_o psalm_n in_o rhyme_n the_o music_n of_o they_o have_v prove_v too_o hard_o for_o the_o people_n to_o learn_v in_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o no_o way_n more_o commendable_a than_o the_o rhime_n themselves_o be_v and_o repeat_v a_o little_a in_o much_o time_n the_o tune_n use_v in_o cathedral_n and_o collegiate_n church_n be_v easy_a to_o learn_v and_o serve_v that_o order_n which_o law_n settle_v for_o devotion_n not_o for_o read_v
they_o as_o scripture_n the_o order_n for_o read_v the_o scripture_n appear_v necessary_a by_o the_o apocrypha_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n common_o call_v apocrypha_n jealousy_n of_o this_o time_n for_o be_v it_o arbitrary_a how_o obvious_a will_v it_o be_v to_o deprave_v public_a or_o private_a proceed_n by_o lesson_n choose_v on_o purpose_n that_o the_o book_n call_v apocrypha_fw-la be_v not_o the_o write_n of_o prophet_n inspire_v be_v agree_v though_o those_o write_n be_v proper_o call_v apocrypha_fw-la which_o the_o church_n authorize_v not_o to_o be_v read_v whereas_o these_o be_v always_o read_v in_o the_o church_n be_v therefore_o proper_o call_v ecclesiastical_a by_o rufinus_n the_o chief_a objection_n against_o they_o resolve_v into_o some_o passage_n that_o seem_v not_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o so_o that_o the_o like_a be_v find_v in_o the_o old_a the_o fact_n of_o razias_n the_o proceed_v of_o judith_n the_o lie_n of_o tobit_n angel_n be_v the_o great_a block_n of_o offence_n not_o consider_v the_o fact_n of_o jael_n or_o that_o of_o samson_n or_o the_o lie_v that_o seem_v to_o be_v reward_v under_o the_o law_n if_o offence_n be_v take_v at_o they_o why_o not_o at_o these_o but_o it_o be_v no_o offence_n to_o good_a christian_n because_o good_a christian_n do_v not_o presume_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v both_o one_o and_o therefore_o be_v content_a to_o know_v their_o duty_n under_o the_o gospel_n let_v that_o which_o agree_v not_o therewith_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n pass_v without_o offence_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n begin_v to_o be_v discover_v in_o they_o more_o clear_o than_o it_o stand_v discover_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n hereupon_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n employ_v they_o for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o cat●c●umeni_n that_o be_v yet_o but_o learner_n of_o christianiny_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o insist_v upon_o the_o use_n of_o they_o for_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o manner_n and_o good_a work_n of_o christian_n much_o abase_v by_o those_o who_o will_v put_v these_o book_n to_o silence_n but_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v always_o use_v they_o to_o lay_v they_o aside_o now_o be_v not_o to_o restore_v the_o church_n but_o to_o build_v a_o new_a one_o as_o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o preach_v so_o effectual_o set_v commend_v what_o preach_v it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n commend_v forth_o by_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v utter_o a_o mistake_n in_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o that_o preach_v which_o the_o scripture_n make_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v the_o publish_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o those_o that_o know_v it_o not_o the_o instruction_n of_o christian_n in_o their_o duty_n be_v call_v teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o have_v make_v evidence_n of_o this_o difference_n the_o apostle_n commission_n be_v to_o teach_v they_o who_o they_o have_v baptize_v all_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o power_n but_o if_o we_o call_v the_o teach_n of_o christian_n preach_v than_o it_o must_v be_v such_o for_o matter_n and_o for_o manner_n both_o as_o may_v indeed_o convict_v christian_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o christian_n and_o that_o not_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o he_o that_o preach_v but_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n whosoever_o think_v himself_o t●ed_v to_o preach_v that_o which_o the_o church_n tie_v he_o not_o to_o preach_v not_o tie_v to_o preach_v that_o which_o it_o ty_v he_o to_o preach_v be_v in_o a_o fair_a way_n to_o edify_v the_o people_n to_o ruin_v by_o improve_n a_o undue_a zeal_n to_o the_o divide_v of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o church_n preach_v without_o sermon_n by_o preach_v there_o may_v be_v preach_v without_o sermon_n and_o sermon_n without_o preach_v the_o psalm_n and_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o that_o order_n in_o which_o it_o provide_v that_o they_o be_v read_v beside_o all_o those_o form_n in_o which_o it_o prescribe_v the_o office_n of_o god_n service_n to_o be_v perform_v which_o if_o they_o contain_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a general_o and_o probable_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o christian_n suppose_v they_o due_o catechize_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o and_o which_o their_o particular_a estate_n require_v they_o that_o never_o hear_v many_o sermon_n may_v have_v hear_v more_o and_o better_a preach_n then_o hundred_o and_o thousand_o of_o sermon_n dangerous_a if_o not_o destructive_a to_o salvation_n a_o thing_n which_o experience_n prove_v more_o than_o possible_a can_v furnish_v they_o who_o shall_v do_v nothing_o but_o run_v from_o sermon_n to_o sermon_n i_o grant_v it_o be_v a_o just_a complaint_n at_o the_o reformation_n that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o teach_v their_o duty_n but_o i_o do_v not_o grant_v either_o that_o they_o can_v be_v teach_v their_o duty_n without_o two_o sermon_n every_o lord_n day_n or_o that_o they_o be_v like_a to_o be_v teach_v their_o duty_n by_o two_o sermon_n every_o lord_n day_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o have_v man_n for_o all_o church_n fit_a to_o preach_v twice_o a_o day_n to_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o people_n it_o will_v not_o be_v possible_a to_o maintain_v their_o preach_v such_o as_o may_v be_v account_v a_o office_n of_o god_n service_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o divers_a hundred_o year_n all_o that_o service_n the_o difference_n between_o the_o second_o service_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o our_o communion_n service_n be_v admit_v to_o stay_v all_o this_o while_n that_o be_v till_o the_o sermon_n be_v do_v be_v not_o to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o to_o communicate_v as_o convert_v not_o baptize_v as_o the_o relapsed_a as_o the_o possess_v by_o unclean_a spirit_n in_o which_o rank_n the_o lunatic_n the_o epilepticke_a the_o frantic_a be_v account_v and_o reason_n good_a for_o they_o be_v not_o to_o communicate_v at_o least_o till_o death_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v dismiss_v without_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n prayer_n fit_v their_o several_a estate_n for_o their_o proficience_n or_o for_o their_o recovery_n that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o communicate_v i_o will_v not_o here_o undertake_v that_o all_o which_o remain_v do_v always_o communicate_v though_o i_o doubt_v not_o i_o may_v undertake_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n require_v they_o always_o to_o communicate_v for_o when_o the_o world_n be_v come_v in_o to_o the_o church_n the_o rule_n that_o prevail_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n there_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o it_o can_v not_o then_o prevail_v by_o st._n chrysostome_n alone_o it_o appear_v sufficient_o that_o the_o rule_n be_v well_o enough_o know_v but_o not_o in_o force_n even_o in_o his_o time_n so_o when_o they_o that_o may_v not_o communicate_v be_v dismiss_v they_o that_o will_v not_o communicate_v remain_v nevertheless_o for_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o to_o be_v set_v aside_o for_o their_o negligence_n this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o first_o and_o second_o service_n which_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o our_o communion_n service_n for_o the_o first_o service_n end_v when_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n begin_v our_o communion_n service_n be_v that_o which_o be_v proper_o call_v the_o liturgy_n in_o greek_a namely_o the_o office_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o that_o which_o go_v before_o the_o offertory_n belong_v not_o proper_o to_o the_o second_o service_n according_a to_o the_o primitive_a form_n for_o the_o present_v of_o the_o element_n be_v always_o every_o where_o the_o beginning_n of_o it_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n begin_v with_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n eucharist_n the_o general_a preface_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o eucharist_n for_o make_v man_n and_o set_v he_o over_o the_o creature_n for_o take_v care_n of_o he_o after_o his_o fall_n teach_v the_o patriarch_n give_v the_o law_n send_v the_o prophet_n and_o when_o all_o this_o do_v not_o the_o effect_n require_v for_o send_v our_o lord_n christ_n from_o this_o thanksgiving_n both_o the_o action_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o consecrate_a element_n be_v still_o call_v the_o eucharist_n and_o it_o be_v call_v a_o preface_n in_o a_o very_a ancient_a african_a canon_n to_o wit_n to_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o element_n which_o follow_v which_o as_o i_o say_v before_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o prayer_n that_o god_n will_v send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o present_a element_n and_o make_v they_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o
they_o who_o shall_v receive_v they_o worthy_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o his_o grace_n the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v of_o those_o who_o be_v admit_v to_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n be_v always_o make_v at_o the_o altar_n or_o communion-table_n in_o the_o action_n of_o the_o sacrament_n reason_n good_a how_o can_v christian_n think_v their_o prayer_n so_o effectual_a with_o god_n as_o when_o they_o be_v present_v at_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n crucify_v the_o representation_n whereof_o to_o god_n in_o heaven_n make_v his_o intercession_n there_o so_o acceptable_a especial_o by_o those_o who_o maintain_v the_o covenant_n of_o their_o christianity_n contract_v at_o their_o baptism_n by_o communicate_v in_o the_o eucharist_n here_o then_o that_o be_v at_o the_o celebrate_n of_o the_o eucharist_n prayer_n it_o the_o prayer_n of_o oblation_n institute_v by_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o ●ater_n of_o it_o supplication_n and_o intercession_n be_v make_v for_o all_o estate_n in_o the_o church_n and_o for_o their_o respective_a necessity_n for_o the_o avert_n of_o all_o god_n judgement_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o all_o his_o blessing_n for_o public_a power_n and_o their_o minister_n for_o the_o governor_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n high_a and_o low_a for_o public_a peace_n and_o prosperity_n for_o the_o season_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o year_n for_o the_o sick_a and_o distress_a for_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o all_o part_n of_o that_o christianity_n which_o we_o profess_v pass_v by_o daily_a offence_n for_o particular_a occasion_n of_o intercede_v with_o god_n which_o each_o particular_a congregation_n may_v have_v and_o there_o be_v good_a and_o sufficient_a witness_n the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o st._n paul_n to_o timothy_n under_o st._n ambrose_n his_o name_n the_o author_n de_fw-fr vocatione_n g●ntium_n st._n augustine_n and_o pope_n celestine_n in_o his_o epistle_n add_v gallos_n that_o this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o in_o obedience_n to_o st._n paul_n instruction_n to_o timothy_n 1_o tim._n ii_o 1-6_a and_o this_o confirm_v my_o opinion_n that_o st._n paul_n order_v prayer_n supplication_n intercession_n and_o thanksgiving_n for_o king_n and_o all_o in_o authority_n mean_n that_o prayer_n supplication_n and_o intercession_n be_v make_v for_o king_n and_o the_o rest_n at_o thanksgiving_n that_o be_v when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v for_o that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o sense_n of_o ancient_a christian_n signify_v the_o celebrate_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o have_v produce_v plentiful_a evidence_n however_o the_o ancient_a church_n manifest_o signify_v that_o they_o do_v offer_v their_o oblation_n out_o of_o which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v consecrate_v with_o a_o intent_n to_o intercede_v with_o god_n for_o public_a or_o private_a necessity_n and_o that_o out_o of_o a_o opinion_n that_o they_o will_v be_v effectual_a allege_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n crucify_v then_o present_a which_o render_v christ_n intercession_n effectual_a for_o we_o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a ground_n why_o they_o attribute_v so_o much_o to_o this_o commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o make_v nothing_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o in_o private_a mass_n but_o more_o than_o will_v be_v value_v for_o the_o frequent_v of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n the_o consecration_n end_v always_o with_o the_o lord_n prayer_n eucharist_n the_o lord_n prayer_n at_o the●_n eucharist_n which_o confirm_v my_o opinion_n that_o st._n paul_n when_o he_o say_v how_o shall_v the_o unlearned_a say_n amen_o to_o thy_o thanksgiving_n 1_o cor._n fourteen_o 16._o mean_n that_o amen_o which_o come_v after_o the_o lord_n prayer_n take_v thanksgiving_n there_o for_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o general_o evident_a in_o antiquity_n as_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o consecration_n at_o sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la or_o lift_v up_o your_o heart_n and_o the_o end_n of_o it_o with_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o doxology_n which_o in_o my_o opinion_n be_v so_o frequent_v upon_o this_o occasion_n by_o the_o licentiousness_n of_o copyist_n in_o time_n come_v to_o be_v crowd_v into_o the_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a enough_o that_o the_o most_o considerable_a copy_n do_v not_o own_v it_o but_o the_o common_a prayer_n for_o all_o estate_n as_o it_o seem_v sometime_o prayer_n the_o place_n for_o the_o common_a prayer_n go_v before_o the_o consecration_n sometime_o come_v after_o it_o for_o i_o be_o to_o seek_v for_o evidence_n in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n import_v that_o they_o come_v after_o the_o consecration_n and_o yet_o i_o have_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o they_o be_v use_v of_o old_a by_o the_o latin_a church_n at_o celebrate_v of_o the_o eucharist_n though_o now_o not_o find_v in_o the_o present_a latin_a mass_n and_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o the_o aethiopic_a depend_v upon_o that_o church_n have_v they_o before_o the_o consecration_n but_o the_o best_a and_o most_o greekish_a form_n and_o authority_n agree_v therewith_o make_v they_o come_v after_o it_o chap._n xvi_o difference_n in_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n depart_v in_o grace_n before_o judgement_n the_o ancient_a church_n never_o pray_v to_o remove_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n to_o what_o purpose_n they_o be_v remember_v at_o the_o eucharist_n the_o saint_n depart_v pray_v for_o the_o militant_a church_n of_o prayer_n to_o the_o saint_n depart_v no_o common_a prayer_n in_o the_o pulpit_n by_o gift_n but_o in_o a_o set_a form_n at_o the_o communion-table_n apostolical_a grace_n subject_n to_o order_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o original_a of_o litany_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o eucharist_n how_o prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n prayer_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o the_o pulpit_n but_o by_o a_o form_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o long_a parliament_n prayer_n by_o the_o spirit_n one_o point_n of_o these_o prayer_n i_o must_v speak_v to_o here_o in_o particular_a judgement_n difference_n in_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n depart_v in_o grace_n before_o judgement_n to_o wit_n the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a for_o which_o the_o mass_n be_v now_o pretend_a by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o sacrifice_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a to_o what_o effect_n the_o scripture_n expound_v by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v be_v think_v to_o allow_v it_o i_o have_v show_v out_o of_o the_o revelation_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o martyr_n appear_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v above_o the_o throne_n appear_v to_o st._n john_n indeed_o but_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o see_v in_o the_o cou●t_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n but_o those_o 144000_o that_o be_v seal_v and_o preserve_v from_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n appear_v not_o in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n but_o on_o mount_n zion_n a_o place_n of_o inferior_a holiness_n and_o sing_v not_o the_o martyr_n song_n but_o be_v only_o able_a to_o learn_v it_o which_o no_o body_n else_o can_v do_v sufficient_a argument_n of_o difference_n in_o the_o state_n of_o bless_a soul_n though_o all_o beneath_o that_o which_o the_o resurrection_n promise_v which_o all_o of_o they_o earnest_o desire_v suppose_v the_o place_n be_v the_o three_o heaven_n suppose_v that_o it_o be_v call_v paradise_n because_o of_o necessity_n it_o answer_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o earthly_a paradise_n suppose_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o die_v under_o the_o law_n it_o be_v call_v abraham_n bosom_n there_o may_v be_v inferior_a mansion_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n before_o the_o rusurrection_n for_o soul_n of_o inferior_a holiness_n though_o they_o depart_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n for_o how_o oft_o do_v the_o apostle_n signify_v a_o solicitous_a expectation_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n in_o those_o who_o they_o suppose_v to_o die_v christian_n a_o thing_n which_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n stand_v with_o the_o estate_n of_o those_o that_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n praise_v he_o day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o therefore_o st._n ambrose_n and_o st._n augustine_n have_v great_a reason_n to_o follow_v the_o four_o book_n of_o esdras_n write_v without_o doubt_n by_o a_o very_a ancient_a christian_a though_o not_o authorize_v by_o the_o church_n place_v the_o generality_n of_o soul_n depart_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n in_o certain_a secret_a receptacle_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o the_o unknown_a condition_n of_o their_o estate_n for_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o intercede_v for_o they_o at_o the_o
celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v so_o general_a and_o so_o ancient_a that_o it_o can_v be_v think_v to_o have_v come_v in_o upon_o imposture_n but_o that_o the_o same_o aspersion_n will_v seem_v to_o take_v hold_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n but_o to_o what_o effect_n this_o intercession_n be_v make_v that_o be_v indeed_o purgatory_n the_o ancient_a church_n never_o pray_v to_o remove_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n the_o due_a point_n of_o difference_n for_o they_o who_o think_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n pray_v and_o do_v themselves_o pray_v for_o the_o remove_n of_o they_o from_o a_o place_n of_o purgatory_n pain_n into_o perfect_a happiness_n by_o the_o clear_a sight_n of_o god_n offend_v against_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o well_o as_o against_o the_o scripture_n both_o way_n for_o justine_n martyr_n make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o the_o gnostic_n heresy_n that_o the_o soul_n without_o the_o body_n be_v in_o perfect_a happiness_n they_o indeed_o hold_v it_o because_o they_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n but_o the_o church_n therefore_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n believe_v no_o perfect_a happiness_n of_o the_o soul_n before_o it_o and_o the_o great_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n in_o this_o point_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o divers_a learned_a writer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n neither_o be_v the_o consent_n of_o it_o less_o evident_a in_o this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o translate_n of_o soul_n into_o a_o new_a estate_n before_o the_o great_a trial_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n then_o what_o hinder_v they_o to_o receive_v comfort_n eucharist_n to_o what_o purpose_n they_o be_v remember_v at_o the_o eucharist_n and_o refreshment_n rest_n and_o peace_n and_o light_n by_o the_o visitation_n of_o god_n by_o the_o consolation_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o his_o good_a angel_n to_o sustain_v they_o in_o the_o expectation_n of_o their_o trial_n and_o the_o anxiety_n they_o be_v to_o pass_v through_o during_o the_o time_n of_o it_o and_o though_o there_o be_v hope_n for_o those_o that_o be_v most_o solicitous_a to_o live_v and_o die_v good_a christian_n that_o they_o be_v in_o no_o such_o suspense_n but_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n yet_o because_o their_o condition_n be_v uncertain_a and_o where_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o the_o better_a there_o be_v fear_n of_o the_o worse_o therefore_o the_o church_n have_v always_o assist_v they_o with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n both_o for_o their_o speedy_a trial_n which_o all_o bless_a soul_n desire_v and_o for_o their_o easy_a absolution_n and_o discharge_v with_o glory_n before_o god_n together_o with_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o their_o happiness_n in_o the_o receive_n of_o their_o body_n now_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a in_o heaven_n church_n the_o saint_n depart_v pray_v for_o the_o militant_a church_n according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o their_o favour_n with_o god_n abound_v also_o with_o love_n to_o his_o church_n militant_a on_o earth_n and_o though_o they_o know_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o particular_a person_n without_o particular_a revelation_n from_o god_n yet_o they_o know_v there_o be_v such_o necessity_n so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n be_v militant_a on_o earth_n therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a both_o that_o they_o offer_v continual_a prayer_n to_o god_n for_o those_o necessity_n and_o that_o their_o prayer_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o great_a force_n and_o effect_n with_o god_n for_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a in_o this_o warfare_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a the_o communion_n of_o saint_n will_v necessary_o require_v that_o all_o who_o remain_v solicitous_a of_o their_o trial_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n for_o present_a comfort_n and_o future_a rest_n that_o the_o live_a beg_v of_o god_n a_o part_n and_o interest_n in_o the_o benefit_n of_o those_o prayer_n which_o they_o who_o be_v so_o near_o to_o god_n in_o his_o kingdom_n tender_v he_o without_o cease_v for_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n as_o for_o prayer_n for_o the_o translate_n of_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n the_o beginning_n of_o their_o come_n into_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a and_o so_o be_v the_o come_n in_o of_o those_o prayer_n which_o call_v upon_o the_o depart_v of_o prayer_n to_o the_o saint_n depart_v saint_n depart_v by_o name_n in_o any_o public_a office_n of_o devotion_n in_o the_o church_n the_o voluntary_a devotion_n of_o private_a person_n most_o of_o they_o ignorant_a and_o carnal_a be_v no_o argument_n of_o the_o original_a and_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o there_o be_v no_o mark_n of_o these_o invocation_n till_o procession_n be_v frequent_v with_o litany_n which_o consist_v most_o a_o end_n of_o they_o and_o can_v not_o be_v in_o use_n before_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n but_o be_v not_o in_o use_n till_o a_o good_a while_n after_o it_o the_o abuse_n have_v increase_v so_o far_o especial_o in_o address_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n that_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v desire_v of_o they_o and_o in_o the_o same_o term_n in_o which_o they_o be_v desire_v of_o god_n even_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o appearance_n of_o devotion_n to_o the_o mother_n be_v visible_o and_o outward_o no_o less_o then_o to_o the_o son_n so_o that_o be_v there_o not_o a_o profession_n of_o that_o church_n extant_a contradict_v the_o proper_a sense_n of_o such_o prayer_n and_o force_v they_o that_o address_v they_o unless_o they_o will_v contradict_v themselves_o to_o abate_v their_o own_o meaning_n and_o to_o expound_v they_o to_o signify_v no_o more_o then_o obtain_v that_o of_o god_n which_o they_o be_v desire_v to_o grant_v of_o themselves_o they_o can_v not_o be_v excuse_v of_o idolatry_n but_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v excuse_v for_o lead_v simple_a christian_n upon_o a_o precipice_n of_o such_o horrible_a danger_n by_o encourage_v both_o they_o and_o those_o that_o teach_v they_o such_o devotion_n for_o do_v not_o carnal_a superstition_n hope_v for_o temporal_a blessing_n from_o such_o voluntary_a application_n without_o that_o promise_n of_o god_n which_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o christianity_n engage_v how_o shall_v a_o christian_a be_v induce_v to_o go_v about_o by_o a_o saint_n that_o have_v immediate_a access_n to_o god_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o primitive_a liturgy_n bar_v table_n no_o common_a prayer_n in_o the_o pulpit_n by_o gift_n but_o in_o a_o set_a form_n at_o the_o communion_n table_n the_o pretence_n of_o this_o time_n require_v the_o liturgy_n settle_v by_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n to_o be_v change_v upon_o a_o ground_n never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n for_o 1600_o year_n that_o every_o minister_n whether_o mean_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n or_o priest_n only_o be_v to_o have_v a_o gift_n in_o pray_v and_o that_o his_o people_n ought_v to_o pray_v that_o which_o his_o gift_n furnish_v and_o not_o that_o which_o the_o church_n prescribe_v and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o such_o gift_n may_v be_v use_v that_o no_o minister_n be_v tie_v to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n above_o thrice_o a_o year_n and_o that_o in_o case_n he_o have_v convenient_a company_n but_o that_o they_o who_o age_n and_o infirmity_n enable_v they_o not_o to_o preach_v and_o pray_v thus_o in_o the_o pulpit_n read_v the_o service_n over_o and_o above_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o minister_v the_o service_n prescribe_v now_o will_v i_o have_v those_o that_o demand_v this_o to_o show_v i_o that_o ever_o the_o prayer_n for_o which_o the_o church_n meet_v be_v make_v in_o the_o pulpit_n for_o 1500_o year_n after_o christ_n i_o know_v i_o have_v allege_v a_o prayer_n of_o st._n ambrose_n before_o his_o sermon_n i_o know_v there_o be_v a_o passage_n of_o st._n augustine_n allege_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o signify_v any_o more_o than_o a_o prayer_n to_o god_n to_o bless_v they_o in_o their_o preach_n the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n be_v another_o thing_n even_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n on_o all_o ordinary_a and_o solemn_a assembly_n be_v make_v at_o the_o altar_n because_o the_o eucharist_n be_v hold_v always_o and_o aught_o to_o be_v hold_v always_o the_o principal_a office_n of_o god_n service_n for_o which_o christian_n ought_v to_o assemble_v more_o frequent_o then_o there_o can_v be_v either_o ability_n or_o opportunity_n for_o preach_v and_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v of_o the_o primitive_a liturgy_n be_v full_a evidence_n hereof_o for_o i_o have_v show_v a_o set_a form_n of_o it_o which_o these_o man_n return_v a_o non_fw-la inventus_fw-la of_o to_z his_o majesty_n commission_n but_o that_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o prayer_n of_o the_o people_n use_v in_o the_o pulpit_n will_v
the_o whole_a church_n be_v more_o destructive_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n than_o all_o that_o corruption_n which_o the_o reformation_n pretend_v to_o cure_v but_o to_o confine_v our_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n our_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o the_o law_n which_o we_o demand_v within_o that_o which_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v appear_v to_o require_v we_o be_v half_o the_o way_n onward_o to_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n have_v the_o ground_n and_o the_o reason_n and_o therefore_o the_o measure_n and_o the_o term_n of_o it_o the_o mistake_n of_o the_o school_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n after_o rome_n the_o fanatic_n further_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o school_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o justification_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o infuse_a righteousness_n to_o which_o they_o ascribe_v it_o be_v no_o way_n destructive_a to_o christianity_n no_o more_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n in_o the_o good_a work_n of_o christian_n so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o god_n promise_n which_o they_o that_o inflame_v that_o opinion_n to_o the_o high_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v acknowledge_v to_o come_v into_o consideration_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o as_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o work_n which_o a_o natural_a man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v common_o call_v meritum_fw-la congrui_fw-la as_o that_o which_o be_v fit_a for_o god_n to_o give_v though_o not_o for_o the_o worth_n of_o the_o work_n it_o be_v indeed_o a_o error_n of_o great_a danger_n but_o never_o be_v general_a in_o the_o school_n and_o now_o general_o disallow_v so_o far_o it_o be_v always_o from_o be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o church_n but_o what_o be_v this_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o furious_a doctrine_n that_o the_o assurance_n of_o a_o man_n predestination_n be_v justify_v faith_n in_o which_o the_o opinion_n of_o absolute_a predestination_n to_o glory_n and_o of_o god_n predetermine_v a_o man_n to_o do_v all_o that_o he_o do_v be_v twist_v together_o with_o a_o enthusiasm_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o be_v assure_v hereof_o by_o his_o spirit_n not_o suppose_v any_o condition_n of_o christianity_n in_o consideration_n of_o which_o it_o be_v have_v and_o by_o the_o knowledge_n whereof_o it_o be_v assure_v we_o for_o they_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n predetermination_n be_v the_o reason_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o freedom_n in_o man_n will_n and_o of_o contingence_n in_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o suppose_v freedom_n and_o contingence_n do_v thereby_o bar_v the_o ill_a consequence_n of_o their_o own_o mistake_n but_o he_o that_o can_v think_v himself_o assure_v of_o that_o which_o the_o gospel_n promise_v not_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o perform_v the_o christianity_n which_o by_o his_o baptism_n he_o undertake_v why_o shall_v he_o hold_v himself_o tie_v why_o shall_v he_o study_v and_o endeavour_v himself_o to_o perform_v it_o nay_o hold_v his_o christianity_n and_o the_o scripture_n which_o infallibility_n the_o consequence_n of_o their_o principle_n worse_o than_o that_o of_o infallibility_n teach_v it_o by_o the_o same_o dictate_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o assure_v his_o salvation_n upon_o those_o term_n why_o shall_v he_o not_o hold_v that_o which_o christianity_n and_o the_o scripture_n teach_v not_o with_o the_o same_o devotion_n and_o assurance_n which_o he_o accept_v the_o scripture_n and_o his_o christianity_n with_o why_o shall_v he_o not_o with_o the_o gnosticke_n and_o mahomet_n and_o the_o mannichee_n place_v his_o salvation_n in_o that_o which_o the_o spirit_n teach_v he_o beside_o and_o above_o the_o scripture_n allow_v christianity_n for_o proficient_o the_o same_o consequence_n take_v hold_v in_o some_o measure_n of_o those_o who_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o make_v the_o sentence_n thereof_o the_o only_a reason_n of_o believe_v they_o tie_v themselves_o to_o accept_v whatsoever_o it_o shall_v decree_v for_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o concern_v their_o salvation_n as_o much_o as_o it_o concern_v their_o salvation_n to_o believe_v the_o holy_a trinity_n indeed_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o danger_n for_o they_o for_o the_o person_n on_o who_o they_o repose_v themselves_o for_o the_o church_n be_v person_n of_o that_o interest_n in_o the_o world_n which_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o open_a corrupt_v of_o christianity_n the_o fear_n be_v that_o they_o may_v authorise_v those_o corruption_n which_o the_o come_n of_o the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n shall_v make_v popular_a not_o that_o they_o shall_v think_v it_o for_o their_o interest_n to_o change_v that_o which_o it_o be_v not_o popular_a to_o change_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v show_v the_o point_n of_o reformation_n both_o the_o point_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o middle_n between_o both_o by_o show_v the_o point_n of_o truth_n whereby_o all_o that_o the_o reformation_n dispute_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v clear_v namely_o that_o that_o faith_n which_o move_v to_o undertake_v baptism_n be_v the_o faith_n which_o alone_o justifi_v i_o have_v show_v withal_o that_o the_o express_a profession_n hereof_o be_v that_o which_o must_v clear_v we_o from_o all_o impu●ation_n of_o the_o schism_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o compliance_n with_o any_o fanatic_n that_o have_v teach_v the_o opposite_a heresy_n be_v by_o such_o profession_n exclude_v from_o all_o liberty_n of_o teach_v it_o for_o the_o future_a they_o who_o take_v justify_v faith_n to_o be_v confidence_n in_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n christ_n do_v commit_v the_o mistake_n which_o i_o have_v show_v and_o if_o they_o go_v far_o to_o think_v that_o by_o be_v assure_v of_o god_n grace_n they_o can_v never_o die_v cut_v of_o that_o estate_n they_o may_v indeed_o think_v themselves_o tie_v to_o return_v to_o god_n by_o repentance_n but_o may_v they_o not_o easy_o be_v delude_v to_o neglect_v it_o think_v themselves_o certain_a before_o hand_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o which_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o mistake_n will_v appear_v no_o less_o then_o that_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n threaten_v as_o for_o the_o question_n between_o man_n free_a will_n and_o god_n praedestination_n grace_n how_o salvation_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o free_a will_n and_o grace_n and_o grace_n take_v it_o by_o itself_o as_o not_o complicate_v and_o twist_v with_o the_o other_o concern_v justify_v faith_n the_o difficulty_n of_o it_o be_v so_o great_a as_o it_o be_v the_o true_a resolution_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o reconcilement_n of_o grace_n with_o free_a will_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n seem_v to_o concern_v the_o substance_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v hold_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o christian_n but_o the_o deny_v either_o of_o man_n free_a will_n or_o god_n free_a grace_n may_v and_o certain_o do_v concern_v it_o and_o therefore_o the_o second_o council_n of_o orange_n have_v determine_v as_o well_o that_o no_o man_n be_v appoint_v by_o god_n to_o death_n and_o therefore_o to_o sin_v as_o that_o whosoever_o persevere_fw-la until_o death_n be_v appoint_v by_o god_n unto_o effectual_a grace_n there_o appear_v no_o necessity_n why_o the_o church_n shall_v run_v any_o hazard_n of_o division_n by_o decree_a farther_z in_o the_o point_n which_o we_o see_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o unite_a province_n have_v that_o decree_n receive_v of_o old_a by_o the_o western_a church_n to_o settle_v the_o bound_n of_o necessary_a truth_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o other_o mean_n of_o settle_v the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n term_n salvation_n concern_v in_o the_o sacrament●_n ●pon_o the_o same_o term_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o the_o profession_n of_o this_o truth_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o creed_n in_o the_o article_n of_o one_o baptism_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o s●ns_n the_o neglect_n whereof_o have_v occasion_v not_o only_o the_o sect_n of_o our_o anabaptist_n q●akers_n and_o other_o enthusiast_n and_o fanatic_n but_o have_v give_v s●cinus_n ground_n enough_o to_o count_v baptism_n indifferent_a and_o some_o of_o our_o fanatic_n to_o think_v it_o a_o mere_a mistake_n that_o any_o man_n be_v ever_o baptize_v with_o water_n to_o make_v he_o a_o christian_a since_o the_o cease_n of_o moses_n law_n and_o john_n baptism_n as_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o which_o concern_v salvation_n in_o it_o be_v manifest_a admit_v the_o premise_n namely_o that_o they_o who_o make_v good_a or_o revive_v the_o covenant_n of_o their_o baptism_n in_o receive_v it_o shall_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o consequence_n his_o spirit_n hypostatical_o unite_v to_o the_o
scripture_n that_o he_o be_v to_o depend_v upon_o the_o pulpit_n for_o resolution_n in_o it_o where_o it_o be_v easy_a as_o st._n gregory_n nazianzene_n answer_v st._n jerome_n about_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o st._n luke_n to_o make_v you_o believe_v by_o the_o please_a delivery_n of_o language_n that_o you_o have_v satisfaction_n and_o yet_o when_o you_o come_v to_o seek_v where_o it_o lie_v remain_v in_o as_o much_o doubt_n as_o before_o and_o if_o you_o hackney_n out_o minister_n to_o two_o sermon_n a_o sabbath_n the_o people_n must_v not_o expect_v that_o from_o they_o in_o private_a which_o they_o can_v expect_v from_o the_o pulpit_n but_o if_o it_o be_v think_v part_n of_o the_o instruction_n due_a to_o god_n people_n to_o make_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o state_n and_o the_o proceed_n of_o public_a government_n a_o subject_n for_o the_o pulpit_n in_o which_o as_o i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o particular_a christian_n to_o be_v satisfy_v by_o all_o the_o inquiry_n they_o can_v make_v in_o private_a then_o what_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v i_o need_v say_v to_o no_o man_n that_o have_v see_v what_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v among_o we_o i_o let_v pass_v less_o abuse_n of_o vainglory_n pride_v itself_o in_o the_o volubility_n rather_o than_o eloquence_n of_o language_n and_o render_v more_o able_a curate_n not_o so_o ready_a speaker_n contemptible_a to_o their_o people_n and_o the_o like_a in_o which_o regard_n it_o may_v many_o time_n be_v question_v whether_o the_o gift_n of_o pray_v and_o preach_v which_o we_o hear_v so_o much_o of_o be_v gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n which_o ordinary_o suppose_v christianity_n or_o of_o the_o evil_a spirit_n which_o always_o put_v it_o to_o flight_n for_o all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v of_o the_o bad_a effect_n of_o preach_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v much_o more_o of_o those_o prayer_n whereby_o evil_a doctrine_n be_v repeat_v to_o god_n for_o a_o blessing_n of_o his_o spirit_n upon_o it_o for_o christian_a people_n be_v weak_o superstitious_a as_o the_o generality_n of_o all_o people_n be_v be_v apt_a to_o place_v the_o bond_n of_o that_o religion_n wherein_o they_o think_v themselves_o tie_v to_o god_n in_o that_o which_o they_o see_v and_o hear_v allege_v to_o god_n in_o so_o reverend_a posture_n that_o form_n of_o service_n which_o we_o hitherto_o use_n have_v well_o deserve_v require_v what_o order_n of_o service_n the_o continual_a communion_n will_v require_v all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v in_o defence_n of_o it_o be_v assault_v by_o violent_a hand_n even_o in_o those_o part_n in_o which_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v inviolable_a nevertheless_o profess_v as_o i_o do_v that_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o continual_a communion_n be_v such_o a_o point_n of_o reformation_n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v at_o rest_n till_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o effect_n i_o must_v not_o stick_v to_o declare_v what_o will_v be_v requisite_a to_o render_v our_o communion_n service_n useful_a to_o that_o purpose_n i_o have_v say_v that_o the_o word_n liturgy_n be_v proper_a to_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o form_n of_o service_n which_o the_o communion_n be_v celebrate_v with_o but_o i_o have_v show_v als●_n that_o those_o prayer_n for_o all_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n in_o christ_n church_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o our_o litany_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n at_o the_o celebrate_n of_o it_o and_o see_v it_o be_v at_o the_o reformation_n and_o be_v at_o present_a a_o law_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o all_o christian_n shall_v be_v present_a at_o mass_n all_o sunday_n and_o festival_n and_o that_o reformation_n consist_v in_o restore_v the_o communion_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o the_o pretence_n of_o reformation_n be_v not_o make_v good_a till_o the_o present_a provision_n be_v bring_v to_o effect_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v all_o sunday_n and_o festival_n in_o all_o church_n and_o chapel_n and_o so_o that_o all_o christian_n may_v be_v tie_v to_o be_v present_a that_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v as_o near_o as_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o communicate_v suppose_v this_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o church_n how_o shall_v it_o be_v attain_v without_o two_o assembly_n every_o sunday_n and_o holy-day-morning_n in_o all_o church_n for_o let_v never_o sabbatarian_o hope_v to_o make_v we_o so_o perfect_a jew_n as_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o dress_v no_o meat_n on_o sunday_n if_o they_o can_v a_o parish_n can_v never_o be_v all_o at_o church_n at_o once_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n never_o become_v the_o church_n till_o it_o demonstrate_v a_o care_n of_o all_o christian_a soul_n a_o like_a between_o the_o hour_n of_o eight_o and_o twelve_o there_o be_v time_n enough_o for_o two_o assembly_n for_o who_o will_v wish_v that_o either_o of_o they_o shall_v last_v above_o a_o hour_n the_o liturgy_n be_v a_o office_n consist_v of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n intermix_v with_o hymn_n and_o of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o the_o common_a prayer_n for_o all_o state_n condition_n and_o necessity_n in_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n with_o now_o though_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o first_o service_n be_v complete_a for_o the_o intent_n of_o it_o yet_o i_o must_v needs_o find_v it_o too_o long_o for_o this_o purpose_n to_o allow_v time_n both_o for_o the_o eucharist_n and_o for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n which_o i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o exclude_v out_o of_o those_o assembly_n which_o i_o confine_v to_o a_o hour_n and_o how_o easy_a be_v it_o to_o frame_v for_o this_o purpose_n a_o order_n of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o require_v that_o the_o epistle_n be_v read_v after_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o gospel_n after_o they_o as_o in_o our_o communion_n service_n the_o gospel_n come_v next_o afore_o the_o creed_n for_o there_o will_v be_v room_n for_o brief_a lesson_n out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o historical_a book_n out_o of_o the_o sapiential_a book_n and_o prophet_n and_o after_o for_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n which_o not_o only_o we_o but_o the_o lutheran_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v now_o use_v with_o hymn_n between_o each_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n receive_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n this_o be_v the_o place_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n according_a require_v what_o form_n of_o instruction_n this_o order_n will_v require_v to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o true_o the_o great_a and_o more_o solemn_a assembly_n may_v be_v capable_a of_o edify_v by_o learned_a and_o eloquent_a sermon_n which_o the_o generality_n of_o parish_n church_n the_o edification_n whereof_o the_o church_n i●_n to_o study_v be_v very_o little_a the_o better_a for_o and_o the_o endless_a number_n of_o strife_n that_o arise_v about_o the_o scripture_n and_o variety_n of_o judgement_n fancy_n and_o interest_n in_o what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v preach_v make_v the_o design_n of_o homily_n necessary_a rather_o to_o restrain_v the_o ability_n of_o indiscreet_a preacher_n then_o to_o help_v the_o inability_n of_o unlearned_a preacher_n only_o that_o they_o be_v so_o frame_v as_o to_o contain_v a_o course_n of_o familiar_a instruction_n in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n not_o concern_v faith_n alone_o but_o all_o the_o chief_a duty_n of_o christian_n which_o these_o that_o we_o have_v do_v not_o satisfy_v though_o not_o unfit_a for_o the_o time_n when_o they_o be_v set_v forth_o and_o be_v so_o frame_v though_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o every_o minister_n can_v best_o insinuate_v it_o into_o the_o mind_n of_o his_o hearer_n or_o as_o it_o may_v be_v couch_v word_n for_o word_n in_o write_v yet_o will_v it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o instruction_n of_o all_o preserve_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a that_o the_o ordinary_a have_v account_n not_o only_o negative_o that_o nothing_o be_v teach_v the_o people_n contrary_a to_o the_o form_n but_o positive_o that_o the_o whole_a matter_n of_o it_o be_v teach_v the_o people_n in_o such_o time_n as_o the_o law_n shall_v determine_v to_o be_v repeat_v again_o and_o again_o for_o the_o certain_a proficience_n of_o all_o for_o it_o must_v not_o avail_v to_o say_v that_o the_o people_n will_v not_o come_v to_o church_n unless_o they_o may_v be_v entertain_v there_o with_o variety_n unless_o the_o people_n be_v content_a to_o be_v conduct_v by_o that_o which_o be_v best_a to_o save_v their_o soul_n though_o it_o please_v not_o their_o fancy_n it_o shall_v
of_o these_o order_n in_o read_v the_o lesson_n in_o sing_v the_o psalm_n in_o attend_v on_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o order_n of_o their_o superiors_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o ecclesiastical_a office_n be_v most_o common_o but_o a_o exercise_n for_o the_o time_n the_o exercise_n of_o their_o humility_n their_o meekness_n and_o patience_n their_o sobriety_n and_o content_a in_o a_o mean_a condition_n live_v upon_o some_o small_a pittance_n which_o the_o stock_n of_o the_o church_n be_v able_a to_o allow_v without_o prejudice_n to_o the_o poor_a be_v that_o which_o make_v they_o fit_a to_o be_v advance_v to_o high_a degree_n the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o employment_n of_o the_o time_n that_o remain_v to_o spare_v from_o their_o attendance_n upon_o these_o ministery_n for_o as_o for_o other_o study_n while_o idolatry_n continue_v in_o credit_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v general_o suspect_v for_o scandalous_a to_o study_v the_o learning_n which_o idolater_n have_v bring_v forth_o true_a it_o be_v many_o of_o they_o not_o be_v book-learned_a or_o otherwise_o content_a with_o so_o religious_a a_o poverty_n and_o live_v sometime_o by_o good_n the_o conversation_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o use_n of_o church_n good_n their_o handwork_n that_o they_o may_v charge_v the_o church_n the_o less_o as_o well_o as_o upon_o their_o pittance_n look_v not_o after_o high_a degree_n other_o embrace_v a_o religious_a life_n and_o have_v mean_n for_o their_o support_n think_v it_o a_o scandal_n to_o their_o profession_n to_o receive_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o church_n know_v that_o what_o they_o spare_v must_v come_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o general_o innumerable_a of_o all_o order_n especial_o bishop_n and_o priest_n take_v upon_o they_o their_o order_n give_v up_o their_o estate_n to_o charitable_a use_n for_o it_o be_v scandalous_a for_o those_o that_o give_v they_o not_o up_o to_o live_v otherwise_o than_o those_o that_o have_v nothing_o to_o maintain_v they_o but_o the_o allowance_n of_o the_o church_n do_v live_v but_o to_o increase_v their_o estate_n out_o of_o church_n good_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o the_o canon_n not_o only_o prohibit_v but_o make_v void_a for_o all_o canon_n from_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o those_o at_o this_o day_n in_o force_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n disable_v the_o clergy_n to_o dispose_v of_o church_n good_n by_o last_o will_v and_o testament_n the_o authorise_v of_o the_o clergy_n to_o marry_v bring_v in_o upon_o consideration_n of_o very_a great_a necessity_n must_v needs_o derogate_v from_o the_o obligation_n of_o this_o rule_n in_o point_n of_o conscience_n for_o it_o must_v needs_o infer_v a_o right_a to_o provide_v for_o wife_n and_o child_n which_o the_o church_n allow_v out_o of_o church_n good_n but_o it_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n abrogate_v the_o same_o without_o alter_v the_o state_n of_o the_o clergy_n profess_v retirement_n from_o the_o world_n beyond_o other_o christian_n without_o extinguish_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o poor_a in_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n both_o of_o they_o subsist_v by_o god_n law_n and_o therefore_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v extinguish_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o the_o marry_a clergy_n content_v themselves_o with_o a_o sober_a maintenance_n and_o provision_n for_o themselves_o and_o the_o dispose_n of_o their_o child_n in_o the_o world_n without_o convert_v the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n to_o raise_v they_o estate_n for_o it_o be_v utter_o a_o mistake_n to_o think_v that_o church_n good_n be_v provide_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o clergy_n may_v equal_v the_o port_n of_o their_o parallel_a rank_n in_o the_o laity_n in_o expense_n it_o be_v much_o against_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o canon_n that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v maintain_v familiarity_n with_o the_o laity_n by_o correspondence_n in_o entertainment_n or_o other_o occasion_n of_o promiscuous_a conversation_n such_o as_o their_o office_n bring_v not_o forth_o for_o that_o hospitality_n which_o parsonage_n and_o other_o benefice_n be_v chargeable_a with_o be_v not_o the_o entertainment_n of_o their_o equal_n among_o the_o laity_n but_o the_o provide_v for_o the_o distress_a wayfarer_n or_o those_o that_o be_v from_o home_n upon_o such_o occasion_n as_o charity_n require_v to_o support_n beside_o the_o casual_a necessity_n of_o the_o poor_a either_o at_o home_n that_o will_v attend_v upon_o the_o service_n of_o god_n but_o that_o their_o honest_a labour_n will_v not_o bear_v they_o out_o in_o it_o or_o abroad_o that_o appear_v to_o be_v in_o present_a distress_n whatsoever_o the_o occasion_n may_v be_v that_o put_v they_o to_o try_v the_o charity_n of_o christian_n in_o fine_a there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o clergy_n than_o too_o great_a indifference_n in_o converse_v with_o the_o laity_n of_o what_o rank_n soever_o for_o the_o authority_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o they_o for_o the_o advise_v exhort_v instruct_v and_o reprove_v of_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n who_o their_o rank_n may_v call_v they_o to_o converse_v with_o upon_o occasion_n which_o their_o office_n either_o breed_v or_o allow_v stand_v upon_o this_o ground_n that_o voluntary_a familiarity_n engage_v they_o not_o any_o way_n to_o approve_v those_o action_n which_o they_o shall_v rather_o discountenance_v and_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o promote_a the_o degree_n the_o ground_n for_o promotion_n to_o high_a degree_n clergy_n to_o high_a degree_n and_o in_o fine_a to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o their_o respective_a church_n for_o it_o be_v true_a by_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v dismiss_v they_o may_v hold_v their_o degree_n in_o another_o church_n but_o the_o expectation_n of_o be_v promote_v lay_v in_o the_o trial_n that_o they_o give_v of_o themselves_o and_o in_o their_o merit_n from_o their_o own_o church_n no_o man_n can_v pretend_v any_o thing_n to_o it_o in_o any_o other_o church_n regular_o how_o much_o the_o translate_n of_o bishop_n be_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n appear_v by_o constantine_n commend_v eus●bius_n of_o caesarea_n for_o refuse_v the_o see_v of_o antiocbia_n by_o the_o reproach_n extant_a of_o the_o other_o eusebius_n the_o supporter_n of_o arius_n for_o remove_v from_o berytus_n to_o nicomedia_n true_a it_o be_v it_o be_v dispense_v in_o upon_o great_a occasion_n but_o every_o privilege_n be_v a_o exception_n to_o a_o law_n always_o the_o service_n which_o every_o one_o do_v his_o church_n be_v that_o which_o entitle_v he_o to_o the_o nomination_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o the_o suffrage_n or_o approbation_n of_o the_o people_n to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o suffragant_fw-la bishop_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o metropolitan_a this_o be_v and_o will_v be_v always_o the_o catholic_n form_n of_o elect_a bishop_n the_o interest_n of_o the_o crown_n be_v well_o enough_o consistent_a with_o it_o provide_v a_o negative_a for_o it_o that_o any_o man_n may_v be_v refuse_v who_o the_o crown_n shall_v not_o approve_v the_o dependence_n of_o the_o people_n upon_o their_o bishop_n which_o the_o interest_n of_o christianity_n necessary_o require_v can_v be_v maintain_v otherwise_o the_o mean_n to_o bring_v this_o education_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o discipline_n ground_v upon_o it_o out_o of_o use_n be_v discipline_n the_o university_n may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o some_o part_n of_o this_o discipline_n say_v to_o be_v the_o erect_n of_o university_n in_o these_o western_a part_n of_o christendom_n for_o this_o be_v without_o question_n a_o far_o short_a way_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o canon_n and_o the_o rite_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v the_o way_n also_o to_o loose_v that_o gravity_n that_o sobriety_n that_o abstinence_n and_o meekness_n upon_o which_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o clergy_n with_o the_o people_n have_v be_v raise_v and_o by_o that_o time_n or_o rather_o long_o before_o corruption_n in_o the_o chief_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o have_v render_v inferior_a degree_n conformable_a it_o be_v not_o my_o meaning_n to_o insist_v upon_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n which_o nothing_o but_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n can_v have_v furnish_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n with_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o university_n may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n may_v it_o be_v recover_v from_o that_o licentiousness_n and_o disobedience_n which_o anarchy_n have_v privilege_v in_o youth_n i_o insist_v upon_o that_o which_o i_o have_v propose_v already_o though_o no_o heed_n be_v give_v to_o it_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o the_o church_n to_o find_v bishopric_n in_o city_n be_v not_o every_o where_o observe_v in_o england_n some_o diocese_n be_v so_o
large_a that_o the_o cathedral_n church_n can_v be_v make_v serviceable_a under_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a diocese_n if_o college_n of_o presbyter_n be_v erect_v in_o all_o the_o head_n town_n of_o county_n the_o youth_n of_o the_o county_n that_o pretend_v to_o the_o clergy_n restore_v this_o canon_n must_v be_v under_o the_o inspection_n of_o the_o same_o if_o before_o their_o go_v to_o the_o university_n they_o be_v list_v under_o they_o as_o expect_v employment_n and_o maintenance_n under_o they_o that_o be_v within_o the_o county_n then_o must_v they_o make_v account_n to_o approve_v their_o conversation_n and_o study_n to_o they_o as_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o live_v in_o that_o estate_n to_o which_o they_o addict_v themselves_o as_o for_o the_o course_n of_o find_v employment_n and_o maintenance_n for_o they_o i_o will_v go_v no_o further_o to_o particular_n than_o i_o have_v do_v it_o be_v enough_o that_o the_o intention_n shall_v be_v the_o restore_n of_o the_o primitive_a canon_n as_o the_o estate_n of_o this_o time_n will_v require_v or_o allow_v it_o will_v be_v no_o small_a gain_n that_o by_o restore_v this_o canon_n it_o reason_n for_o it_o the_o complaint_n of_o plurality_n will_v be_v silence_v for_o that_o person_n who_o ability_n and_o trust_n be_v approve_v to_o the_o bishop_n by_o information_n of_o the_o say_a presbyter_n shall_v have_v the_o care_n of_o more_o than_o one_o church_n will_v be_v no_o more_o inconvenience_n then_o that_o those_o presbyter_n have_v a_o care_n of_o the_o county_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n always_o suppose_v that_o the_o incumbent_n upon_o the_o cure_n and_o the_o rate_n of_o his_o maintenance_n be_v allow_v or_o rather_o constitute_v by_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o that_o right_n original_o belong_v i_o will_v say_v no_o more_o to_o justify_v this_o proposition_n but_o this_o that_o he_o who_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o several_a church_n that_o be_v to_o several_a diocese_n either_o as_o to_o the_o duty_n of_o govern_v or_o of_o be_v govern_v can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v accountable_a to_o both_o according_a to_o that_o account_n which_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n require_v of_o every_o order_n and_o degree_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o again_o that_o see_v all_o exemption_n privilege_v against_o the_o ordinary_a rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o effect_n and_o consequence_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o the_o usurpation_n thereof_o that_o the_o reformation_n which_o we_o profess_v can_v be_v justify_v in_o itself_o though_o in_o comparison_n it_o may_v abate_v of_o the_o abuse_n which_o go_v afore_o without_o restore_v a_o rule_n of_o such_o consequence_n bu●_n all_o this_o while_n it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o my_o intent_n that_o those_o who_o be_v present_o possess_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n shall_v be_v present_o destitute_v but_o that_o a_o course_n be_v provide_v for_o the_o future_a to_o which_o the_o world_n may_v be_v dispose_v by_o degree_n in_o the_o second_o place_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o our_o reformation_n process_n public_a fame_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v purge_v by_o ecclesiastical_a process_n and_o towards_o restore_v the_o discipline_n of_o penance_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o all_o malefactor_n convict_v by_o law_n of_o capital_a or_o infamous_a crime_n or_o other_o of_o as_o great_a malice_n to_o god_n though_o not_o so_o destructive_a to_o civil_a society_n shall_v stand_v excommunicate_a when_o their_o life_n and_o liberty_n be_v save_v till_o they_o satisfy_v the_o church_n of_o their_o conversion_n to_o god_n the_o law_n of_o this_o land_n provide_v no_o other_o trial_n for_o sin_n of_o uncleanness_n but_o that_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n have_v hitherto_o enable_v they_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o public_a scandal_n by_o depose_v witness_n ex_fw-la officio_fw-la which_o according_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ignorance_n and_o malice_n of_o the_o bless_a reformation_n have_v be_v construe_v for_o a_o usurpation_n upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o christian_a people_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o ruler_n of_o god_n ancient_a people_n be_v able_a every_o one_o within_o the_o sphere_n of_o his_o authority_n to_o oblige_v all_o man_n to_o answer_v upon_o oath_n in_o any_o thing_n wherein_o they_o shall_v adjure_v they_o to_o answer_v for_o upon_o this_o account_n our_o lord_n himself_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o law_n answer_v the_o adjuration_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o levitical_a law_n prescribe_v a_o trespass_n offer_v for_o he_o who_o be_v adjure_v to_o speak_v his_o knowledge_n in_o any_o business_n shall_v conceal_v it_o this_o the_o jew_n extend_v to_o the_o adjuration_n of_o private_a person_n if_o make_v in_o open_a court_n but_o there_o be_v no_o question_n that_o the_o prince_n and_o judge_n of_o that_o people_n each_o in_o the_o mater_fw-la of_o his_o office_n oblige_v their_o inferior_n to_o answer_v their_o knowledge_n so_o that_o they_o be_v perjure_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la conceal_v that_o which_o they_o know_v of_o any_o man_n cause_n under_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o bishop_n in_o consistory_n with_o his_o presbyter_n do_v try_v all_o scandal_n in_o the_o church_n by_o summon_v all_o person_n within_o the_o diocese_n to_o witness_v their_o knowledge_n and_o that_o to_o this_o effect_n that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v detect_v to_o have_v conceal_v his_o knowledge_n he_o become_v thereby_o liable_a to_o penance_n as_o for_o a_o heinous_a sin_n and_o constantine_n the_o great_a authorise_v by_o a_o act_n of_o the_o empire_n yet_o extant_a the_o sentence_n of_o bishop_n in_o all_o cause_n that_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o they_o by_o consent_n of_o party_n give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o because_o their_o authority_n be_v able_a present_o to_o discover_v that_o which_o civil_a court_n can_v not_o bring_v to_o light_v by_o tedious_a suit_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o christian_n find_v themselves_o tie_v to_o answer_v the_o truth_n which_o their_o pastor_n summon_v they_o to_o declare_v for_o discharge_v of_o their_o conscience_n christianity_n be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n it_o may_v become_v requisite_a that_o the_o generality_n of_o this_o authority_n shall_v be_v restrain_v within_o such_o bound_n as_o emergent_a abuse_n may_v oblige_v the_o law_n to_o provide_v but_o when_o a_o power_n so_o near_o concern_v christianity_n be_v cry_v down_o for_o a_o usurpation_n upon_o the_o church_n it_o appear_v that_o christianity_n be_v at_o a_o low_a ebb_n if_o they_o who_o understand_v so_o little_a in_o the_o scripture_n or_o in_o matter_n concern_v the_o church_n dare_v undertake_v to_o reform_v it_o adultery_n be_v one_o of_o the_o sin_n which_o the_o ancient_a church_n in_o some_o place_n dare_v not_o warrant_v forgiveness_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o restore_v aulterer_n to_o the_o communion_n no_o not_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n if_o the_o law_n therefore_o provide_v no_o other_o trial_n for_o it_o but_o by_o the_o christian_a court_n to_o take_v away_o that_o mean_n of_o trial_n which_o the_o church_n inherit_v of_o god_n ancient_a people_n be_v in_o some_o measure_n to_o authorise_v adultery_n in_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n that_o be_v to_o call_v down_o god_n vengeance_n upon_o it_o rather_o it_o shall_v be_v provide_v that_o inquisition_n after_o all_o scandal_n upon_o public_a fame_n may_v be_v authorize_v upon_o term_n fit_a to_o prevent_v abuse_n though_o not_o for_o civil_a punishment_n which_o the_o christian_a court_n shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o yet_o for_o the_o bring_n of_o sin_n under_o penance_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o that_o sinner_n which_o be_v become_v ●●torious_a penance_n sinner_n convict_v ●y_a ●●w_o n●●●●_n communicate_v b●fore_o penance_n by_o conviction_n in_o court_n according_a to_o the_o civil_a law_n of_o the_o land_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o communion_n wi●ho●●_n satisfy_v the_o church_n by_o perform_v fit_a penance_n that_o god_n be_v satisfy_v and_o the_o curate_n indeed_o seem_v to_o be_v enable_v by_o the_o present_a law_n to_o refuse_v all_o such_o the_o communion_n much_o more_o if_o he_o be_v able_a to_o refuse_v those_o that_o seem_v scandalous_a till_o they_o be_v try_v and_o if_o he_o do_v not_o what_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v must_v answer_v god_n for_o the_o soul_n which_o he_o poyson_v by_o give_v he_o the_o eucharist_n who_o bar_v himself_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o his_o repentance_n not_o be_v manifest_a as_o his_o sin_n be_v but_o if_o the_o law_n will_v not_o leave_v out_o the_o curate_n in_o refuse_v he_o till_o he_o have_v satisfy_v the_o choice_n be_v hard_a for_o he_o that_o have_v a_o family_n to_o forfeit_v his_o benefice_n by_o
the_o schism_n which_o the_o reformation_n have_v make_v between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v dissolve_v the_o obligation_n of_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n if_o that_o change_n which_o be_v call_v reformation_n preserve_v not_o such_o a_o church_n as_o aught_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o whole_a or_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v no_o reformation_n but_o the_o destruction_n of_o christianity_n now_o when_o these_o law_n enable_v soldier_n and_o justice_n of_o the_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o call_v themselves_o minister_n to_o make_v public_a preacher_n as_o well_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v no_o ordination_n from_o the_o church_n as_o those_o that_o have_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o all_o difference_n between_o clergy_n and_o people_n be_v by_o they_o dissolve_v and_o make_v void_a and_o by_o consequence_n the_o corporation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o ground_n and_o create_v all_o the_o difference_n which_o hitherto_o by_o all_o christian_n have_v be_v receive_v between_o these_o two_o quality_n true_a it_o be_v that_o for_o the_o present_a as_o well_o those_o who_o have_v lawful_a authority_n to_o officiate_v the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n by_o ordination_n from_o the_o church_n be_v admit_v to_o or_o maintain_v in_o their_o benefice_n by_o these_o law_n as_o those_o that_o have_v none_o though_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v that_o those_o who_o have_v such_o authority_n do_v pretend_v to_o act_v by_o virtue_n of_o it_o and_o not_o by_o this_o law_n further_a then_o as_o by_o submit_v to_o it_o they_o remove_v that_o force_n which_o hinder_v their_o right_n otherwise_o get_v to_o take_v effect_n but_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o suppose_v this_o law_n to_o continue_v a_o age_n none_o such_o can_v remain_v and_o when_o none_o such_o remain_v than_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o church_n in_o england_n but_o by_o equivocation_n of_o word_n if_o the_o premise_n be_v true_a and_o therefore_o those_o that_o acknowledge_v such_o as_o have_v no_o other_o authority_n but_o from_o this_o power_n for_o their_o pastor_n can_v consequent_o profess_v to_o believe_v one_o catholic_n church_n nor_o hope_v for_o salvation_n by_o be_v member_n of_o it_o for_o suppose_v for_o the_o present_a though_o not_o grant_v that_o the_o power_n which_o make_v these_o law_n be_v from_o god_n yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v from_o our_o lord_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o this_o authority_n derive_v from_o it_o can_v be_v derive_v from_o any_o act_n of_o they_o constitute_v the_o church_n and_o enable_v it_o to_o give_v this_o authority_n by_o acknowledge_v whereof_o christian_n presume_v that_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n now_o that_o you_o may_v see_v why_o the_o belief_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v a_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n i_o say_v further_o that_o you_o can_v acknowledge_v such_o man_n for_o your_o pastor_n because_o you_o be_v not_o secure_v by_o these_o law_n that_o they_o be_v not_o heretic_n for_o see_v the_o act_n of_o establishment_n pretend_v only_o to_o hold_v forth_o the_o christian_a religion_n centain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o all_o the_o haerefy_v that_o be_v this_o day_n in_o the_o world_n do_v maintain_v themselves_o to_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o these_o law_n provide_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v heretic_n which_o be_v send_v you_o for_o pastor_n here_o i_o must_v not_o complain_v that_o whereas_o all_o that_o profess_v faith_n in_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n though_o differ_v from_o the_o profession_n hold_v forth_o be_v protect_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n popery_n and_o praelacy_n be_v except_v though_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o both_o profess_v faith_n in_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o that_o those_o who_o hold_v the_o profession_n establish_v by_o the_o law_n under_o which_o we_o be_v bear_v be_v refuse_v that_o protection_n which_o be_v tender_v socinian_o enemy_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n who_o manifest_o profess_v christian_n religion_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o faith_n in_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o my_o business_n be_v not_o to_o say_v what_o they_o that_o make_v these_o law_n shall_v have_v do_v instead_o of_o make_v they_o but_o what_o you_o be_v to_o do_v now_o they_o be_v make_v but_o if_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o those_o that_o make_v these_o law_n repose_v trust_n in_o they_o to_o who_o they_o grant_v these_o commission_n that_o they_o will_v not_o take_v any_o to_o be_v godly_a man_n that_o be_v heretic_n to_o this_o i_o say_v that_o will_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n for_o several_a reason_n for_o those_o that_o profess_v all_o that_o this_o law_n require_v they_o to_o profess_v that_o be_v faith_n in_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o christian_a religion_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v judge_v ungodly_a for_o whatsoever_o they_o profess_v beside_o by_o any_o power_n derive_v from_o this_o law_n but_o a_o arbitrary_a power_n to_o be_v exercise_v at_o the_o will_n of_o the_o commissioner_n and_o how_o be_v you_o assure_v that_o no_o haeretick_n shall_v obtain_v a_o certificate_n of_o three_o neighbour_n and_o so_o answer_v their_o demand_n that_o they_o shall_v think_v he_o in_o god_n grace_n however_o you_o be_v not_o warrant_v to_o trust_v your_o salvation_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o that_o depend_v on_o you_o either_o upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o commissioner_n or_o of_o they_o that_o make_v the_o law_n if_o it_o be_v demand_v why_o the_o secular_a power_n and_o the_o commissioner_n thereof_o be_v not_o as_o well_o to_o be_v trust_v with_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n as_o those_o that_o may_v pretend_v authority_n from_o the_o church_n the_o answer_n be_v ready_a that_o when_o you_o acknowledge_v a_o pastor_n send_v by_o the_o church_n you_o neither_o trust_v his_o person_n nor_o the_o person_n of_o he_o that_o send_v he_o but_o the_o law_n which_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v from_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o limit_v his_o profession_n and_o undertake_v to_o exercise_v the_o function_n which_o he_o receive_v according_a to_o they_o he_o become_v thereby_o qualify_v for_o his_o charge_n but_o he_o who_o acknowledge_v no_o such_o law_n because_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o catholic_n church_n destroy_v the_o trust_n you_o be_v to_o have_v in_o those_o who_o you_o acknowledge_v your_o pastor_n that_o they_o be_v not_o heretic_n and_o here_o i_o must_v not_o fail_v to_o give_v you_o notice_n that_o those_o presbyterian_o and_o independent_o who_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n upon_o pretence_n of_o erect_v presbytery_n and_o congregation_n do_v now_o make_v themselves_o commissioner_n to_o execute_v these_o law_n which_o destroy_v both_o presbytery_n and_o congregation_n have_v thereby_o destroy_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o trust_n which_o the_o church_n may_v have_v have_v in_o they_o for_o conduct_v in_o christianity_n for_o what_o profession_n can_v it_o be_v presume_v that_o they_o will_v stand_v to_o when_o they_o stand_v not_o to_o that_o for_o which_o they_o have_v destroy_v the_o unity_n of_o this_o church_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n though_o they_o may_v be_v readmit_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o repentance_n yet_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v be_v readmit_v to_o be_v of_o the_o clergy_n for_o these_o apostasy_n make_v they_o uncapable_a of_o that_o trust_n which_o the_o church_n must_v necessary_o repose_v in_o the_o clergy_n that_o you_o may_v see_v this_o be_v not_o for_o nothing_o i_o say_v further_o that_o that_o there_o be_v among_o we_o a_o damnable_a heresy_n of_o antinomian_o or_o enthusiast_n former_o when_o puritan_n be_v not_o divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o grindletons_n and_o etonists_n these_o do_v believe_v so_o to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n by_o which_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o elect_n that_o true_a faith_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o revelation_n hereof_o and_o by_o consequence_n that_o all_o their_o sin_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v be_v remit_v by_o this_o grace_n to_o repent_v of_o sin_n or_o to_o contend_v against_o it_o be_v the_o renounce_n of_o god_n free_a grace_n and_o save_a faith_n another_o opinion_n there_o be_v which_o i_o can_v say_v the_o presbytean_n hold_v or_o require_v to_o be_v hold_v but_o in_o regard_n their_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o catechism_n disclaim_v it_o not_o and_o therefore_o allow_v they_o that_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v of_o their_o faction_n may_v well_o be_v say_v to_o maintain_v it_o that_o for_o a_o
authorise_v they_o as_o ever_o they_o be_v to_o that_o which_o they_o have_v destroy_v to_o introduce_v this_o shadow_n of_o a_o church_n if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o your_o estate_n will_v be_v liable_a to_o penalty_n that_o may_v be_v enact_v against_o those_o that_o withdraw_v from_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o religion_n public_o hold_v forth_o to_o this_o i_o have_v no_o answer_n but_z that_o we_o be_v to_o obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n to_o prefer_v the_o next_o world_n before_o this_o and_o to_o bear_v christ_n cross_n if_o we_o expect_v his_o kingdom_n only_o thus_o much_o i_o must_v observe_v that_o these_o law_n proceed_v from_o a_o profession_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o force_v man_n conscience_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o penalty_n and_o therefore_o though_o the_o praelatical_a party_n be_v not_o protect_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n yet_o can_v they_o be_v punish_v for_o it_o but_o by_o deny_v that_o which_o be_v declare_v upon_o the_o public_a faith_n beside_o acknowledge_v the_o christian_a religion_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o professing-faith_n in_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n they_o be_v as_o much_o qualify_v for_o protection_n as_o those_o that_o be_v protect_v by_o the_o act_n of_o establishment_n and_o not_o to_o allow_v the_o exercise_n of_o that_o religion_n the_o profession_n whereof_o be_v not_o disallow_v seem_v to_o be_v to_o forbid_v man_n to_o be_v christian_n who_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o be_v such_o christian_n and_o to_o expose_v they_o to_o popular_a tumult_n contrary_a to_o the_o public_a peace_n who_o no_o law_n punish_v if_o the_o papist_n continue_v nevertheless_o liable_a to_o former_a penalty_n perhaps_o it_o be_v because_o they_o be_v repute_v idolater_n but_o because_o these_o law_n and_o the_o profession_n from_o when●_n they_o proceed_v may_v change_v i_o must_v confess_v you_o can_v follow_v my_o advice_n but_o that_o your_o estate_n may_v become_v questionable_a neither_o will_v i_o give_v it_o can_v i_o assure_v you_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n otherwise_o if_o you_o demand_v what_o mean_v i_o can_v show_v you_o to_o exercise_v your_o religion_n withdraw_v from_o the_o mean_n which_o these_o act_n provide_v i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v hitherto_o every_o where_o of_o the_o clergy_n that_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n who_o will_v find_v it_o their_o duty_n to_o see_v your_o infant_n christen_v your_o child_n catechise_v the_o eucharist_n communicate_v to_o all_o that_o shall_v withdraw_v from_o church_n forcible_o possess_v by_o they_o who_o you_o own_v not_o for_o pastor_n and_o if_o they_o can_v continual_o minister_v to_o you_o so_o disperse_v the_o ordinary_a office_n of_o god_n service_n you_o have_v the_o service_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n you_o have_v the_o scripture_n to_o read_v for_o part_n of_o it_o you_o have_v store_n of_o sermon_n manifest_o allow_v by_o the_o church_n to_o read_v you_o have_v prayer_n prescribe_v for_o all_o your_o own_o necessity_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n to_o serve_v god_n with_o these_o in_o private_a with_o such_o as_o depend_v upon_o you_o and_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o you_o leave_v out_o what_o belong_v to_o the_o priest_n office_n to_o say_v i_o do_v to_o the_o best_a of_o my_o judgement_n believe_v a_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n which_o you_o can_v offer_v at_o the_o church_n in_o such_o case_n and_o though_o i_o censure_v not_o my_o brethren_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o think_v fit_a to_o comply_v with_o the_o power_n which_o we_o be_v under_o in_o hold_v or_o come_v by_o their_o benefice_n i_o suppose_v in_o respect_n to_o their_o flock_n rather_o than_o to_o their_o fruit_n yet_o if_o they_o believe_v themselves_o and_o their_o flock_n to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n they_o must_v needs_o believe_v those_o flock_n that_o acknowledge_v such_o pastor_n to_o be_v member_n of_o no_o church_n and_o therefore_o acknowledge_v you_o and_o own_o your_o departure_n and_o declare_v themselves_o to_o their_o own_o flock_n and_o instruct_v they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a when_o the_o like_a case_n fall_v out_o and_o so_o the_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o stranger_n will_v unite_v we_o to_o make_v a_o flock_n under_o those_o who_o we_o acknowledge_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n i_o have_v find_v myself_o press_v to_o print_v copy_n hereof_o for_o my_o own_o use_n thereby_o to_o declare_v thus_o much_o of_o my_o judgement_n to_o you_o and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o friend_n because_o the_o consequence_n of_o own_v such_o man_n for_o your_o pastor_n will_v be_v to_o make_v we_o member_n of_o several_a church_n which_o must_v disable_v i_o to_o do_v any_o office_n of_o a_o clergy_n man_n towards_o you_o unless_o it_o be_v the_o prosecute_n of_o this_o by_o show_v you_o further_a reason_n to_o justify_v what_o i_o say_v here_o and_o to_o reduce_v you_o to_o it_o though_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v my_o study_n faithful_o to_o serve_v my_o friend_n in_o all_o office_n of_o civility_n and_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v consider_v what_o appearance_n there_o be_v that_o any_o thing_n shall_v move_v i_o to_o make_v myself_o liable_a to_o so_o much_o harm_n as_o the_o public_a declare_v of_o this_o opinion_n will_v make_v i_o liable_a to_o but_o the_o discharge_n of_o my_o conscience_n to_o god_n and_o they_o as_o the_o case_n shall_v require_v i_o to_o discharge_v it_o the_o due_a way_n of_o compose_v the_o difference_n on_o foot_n preserve_v the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o herbert_n thorndike_n i_o have_v find_v myself_o oblige_v by_o that_o horrible_a confusion_n in_o religion_n which_o the_o late_a war_n have_v introduce_v to_o declare_v the_o utmost_a of_o my_o opinion_n concern_v the_o whole_a point_n of_o religion_n upon_o which_o the_o western_a church_n stand_v divide_v into_o so_o many_o party_n and_o now_o find_v no_o cause_n to_o repent_v i_o of_o do_v it_o can_v find_v no_o cause_n why_o i_o shall_v not_o declare_v the_o consequence_n of_o it_o in_o settle_v of_o that_o which_o remain_v of_o our_o difference_n for_o middle_a way_n to_o so_o good_a a_o end_n be_v now_o acceptable_a mere_o as_o middle_a way_n and_o tend_v to_o drive_v a_o bargain_n without_o pretend_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v admit_v how_o much_o more_o a_o expedient_a pretend_v necessity_n from_o reason_n extant_a in_o public_a and_o not_o contradict_v the_o chief_a ground_n that_o i_o suppose_v here_o because_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o at_o large_a be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n which_o profess_v one_o catholic_n church_n for_o either_o it_o signify_v nothing_o or_o it_o signify_v that_o god_n have_v found_v one_o visible_a church_n that_o be_v that_o he_o have_v oblige_v all_o church_n and_o all_o christian_n of_o who_o all_o church_n consist_v to_o hold_v visible_a communion_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o visible_a office_n of_o god_n public_a service_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o satisfy_v that_o the_o difference_n upon_o which_o we_o be_v divide_v can_v be_v just_o settle_v upon_o any_o term_n which_o any_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o refuse_v as_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o in_o that_o case_n we_o must_v needs_o become_v schismatic_n by_o settle_v ourselves_o upon_o such_o law_n under_o which_o any_o church_n may_v refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o we_o because_o it_o be_v bind_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o whole_a church_n true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o these_o term_n will_v presuppose_v the_o entire_a profession_n of_o christianity_n whether_o concern_v faith_n or_o manner_n for_o otherwise_o how_o shall_v those_o office_n in_o which_o all_o the_o church_n be_v to_o communicate_v be_v count_v the_o service_n of_o god_n according_a to_o christianity_n and_o this_o profession_n be_v the_o condition_n upon_o the_o undergo_n whereof_o all_o man_n by_o be_v baptize_v and_o make_v christian_n be_v also_o admit_v to_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n as_o member_n of_o it_o but_o nothing_o can_v make_v it_o visible_a to_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o all_o man_n what_o communion_n they_o be_v to_o resort_v unto_o for_o their_o salvation_n but_o the_o visible_a communion_n of_o all_o part_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v be_v maintain_v for_o divers_a age_n of_o the_o church_n be_v now_o visible_o interrupt_v by_o the_o reformation_n and_o before_o by_o the_o breach_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n and_o therefore_o though_o it_o be_v visible_a to_o reason_n right_o inform_v what_o communion_n a_o man_n be_v to_o embrace_v for_o his_o salvation_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o now_o
correspondent_a to_o the_o primitive_a form_n tend_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a but_o let_v no_o man_n think_v that_o for_o the_o love_n of_o such_o a_o correspondence_n i_o have_v any_o itch_n to_o call_v in_o question_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a the_o alteration_n be_v great_a and_o must_v needs_o produce_v a_o great_a motion_n to_o engraph_v it_o into_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o not_o of_o opinion_n to_o change_v the_o law_n for_o hope_n of_o amendment_n with_o so_o much_o appearance_n of_o danger_n to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o whole_a but_o i_o be_o of_o opinion_n that_o it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o erect_v presbytery_n that_o be_v college_n of_o presbyter_n in_o all_o shire_n town_n which_o have_v no_o cathedral_n church_n for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o the_o respective_a county_n with_o and_o under_o the_o bishop_n and_o that_o so_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n will_v be_v set_v on_o work_n to_o the_o best_a effect_n and_o purpose_n for_o those_o town_n have_v common_o church_n altogether_o unprovided_a of_o mean_n through_o the_o horrible_a sacrilege_n that_o have_v pass_v and_o yet_o in_o common_a reason_n agree_v with_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n spirit_n from_o whence_o the_o rule_n of_o episcopacy_n issue_v ought_v to_o be_v nursery_n of_o christianity_n to_o the_o respective_a county_n and_o that_o intent_n can_v so_o well_o be_v bring_v to_o effect_n as_o by_o plant_v the_o wise_a and_o those_o that_o have_v most_o of_o the_o clergy_n in_o their_o life_n in_o the_o most_o eminent_a place_n with_o authority_n next_o to_o the_o chief_a over_o their_o respective_a bound_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o such_o person_n the_o office_n of_o god_n service_n may_v so_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o chief_a place_n as_o may_v be_v a_o pattern_n for_o their_o country_n church_n to_o follow_v these_o presbyter_n may_v grow_v up_o by_o education_n in_o that_o discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n which_o i_o have_v recommend_v upon_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o may_v live_v a_o collegiate_n life_n in_o common_a exercise_v a_o care_n and_o inspection_n over_o inferior_n together_o with_o the_o charge_n of_o instruct_v or_o see_v they_o instruct_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n confine_v all_o degree_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o their_o respective_a church_n may_v be_v revive_v by_o their_o mean_n the_o supersede_n whereof_o be_v certain_o one_o of_o the_o irregularity_n of_o the_o papacy_n have_v conduce_v much_o to_o the_o dissolution_n of_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n for_o in_o conscience_n how_o can_v he_o that_o be_v oblige_v to_o any_o church_n give_v account_n of_o himself_o to_o another_o to_o which_o the_o first_o be_v not_o subordinate_a and_o therefore_o though_o the_o presbytery_n which_o i_o propose_v be_v not_o church_n yet_o may_v they_o take_v account_n of_o their_o respective_a clergy_n and_o render_v it_o to_o their_o bishop_n the_o promotion_n of_o inferior_a order_n belong_v unto_o their_o account_n may_v proc_v upon_o the_o account_n which_o they_o give_v the_o censure_n that_o be_v requisite_a to_o pass_v in_o foro_fw-la exteriori_fw-la may_v pass_v they_o in_o the_o first_o instance_n and_o from_o they_o be_v transmit_v to_o the_o bishop_n be_v either_o enact_v or_o void_v always_o with_o right_a of_o appeal_n to_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n in_o case_n of_o weight_n and_o in_o the_o interval_n thereof_o to_o their_o deputy_n to_o which_o purpose_n and_o in_o which_o nature_n the_o high_a commission_n ought_v to_o be_v revive_v for_o as_o it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v allow_v that_o the_o bishop_n negative_a be_v any_o way_n question_v so_o be_v it_o no_o way_n fit_a that_o the_o consent_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n both_o be_v conclude_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o instance_n as_o for_o those_o diocese_n which_o be_v conclude_v within_o only_o one_o county_n there_o i_o suppose_v i_o need_v not_o say_v that_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o cathedral_n be_v by_o inheritance_n this_o presbytery_n now_o these_o college_n of_o presbyter_n consist_v of_o those_o only_a that_o shall_v have_v run_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o their_o life_n in_o the_o education_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v there_o any_o possible_a pretence_n of_o burden_n upon_o they_o if_o the_o condition_n of_o single_a life_n shall_v be_v require_v to_o qualify_v they_o for_o their_o place_n for_o this_o be_v not_o to_o tie_v any_o man_n to_o single_a life_n see_v who_o will_n may_v go_v forth_o and_o be_v provide_v of_o a_o country_n church_n but_o it_o be_v to_o maintain_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o the_o most_o eminent_a place_n wherein_z there_o be_v a_o course_n propose_v to_o they_o who_o embrace_v it_o of_o end_v their_o day_n in_o it_o and_o the_o course_n of_o a_o collegiate_n life_n which_o i_o propose_v seem_v a_o sufficient_a mean_n and_o advantage_n to_o overcome_v those_o temptation_n which_o in_o these_o day_n may_v seem_v too_o difficult_a for_o all_o the_o clergy_n to_o undergo_v as_o for_o the_o mean_n of_o support_v these_o presbytery_n wherein_o the_o gure_n of_o all_o parish_n within_o the_o shire_n town_n be_v provide_v for_o and_o include_v it_o be_v no_o difficulty_n to_o he_o that_o consider_v with_o conscience_n that_o original_o the_o endowment_n of_o the_o diocese_n be_v the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o mother_n church_n and_o afterward_o appropriate_v to_o parish_n church_n by_o abate_v the_o right_a of_o the_o mother_n church_n upon_o particular_a contract_n appear_v to_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o part_n for_o if_o the_o mother_n church_n have_v abate_v so_o much_o of_o her_o common_a right_n when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o parish_n be_v it_o not_o necessary_a that_o the_o parish_n now_o abate_v of_o their_o property_n in_o their_o respective_a endowment_n by_o pension_n to_o these_o college_n now_o they_o appear_v to_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o t●e_v diocese_n and_o this_o i_o be_o now_o bold_a to_o profess_v though_o superior_n do_v not_o go_v before_o in_o it_o because_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o by_o this_o position_n i_o abate_v not_o a_o hair_n of_o that_o power_n which_o the_o bishop_n in_o england_n now_o use_v but_o i_o add_v much_o to_o the_o strictness_n of_o discipline_n that_o be_v in_o effect_n of_o christianity_n by_o require_v all_o ordination_n all_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o foro_fw-la exteriori_fw-la to_o pass_v both_o the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o bishop_n in_o several_a instance_n and_o further_o than_o this_o i_o extend_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o divine_a to_o particular_n but_o leave_v the_o rest_n entire_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o superior_n and_o this_o may_v serve_v to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o difference_n on_o foot_n concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n may_v not_o settle_v into_o a_o change_n conduce_v to_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n which_o will_v hold_v till_o strong_a in_o the_o other_o concern_v the_o service_n if_o man_n take_v their_o measure_n by_o the_o common_a interest_n of_o christianity_n not_o by_o their_o particular_a prejudices_fw-la for_o i_o conceive_v i_o may_v well_o suppose_v that_o the_o sectary_n pretence_n of_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n be_v content_a to_o be_v bury_v in_o oblivion_n and_o silence_n consider_v that_o the_o excess_n be_v evident_a and_o horrible_a which_o that_o pretence_n have_v bring_v forth_o beside_o that_o no_o man_n now_o stand_v to_o that_o dangerous_a position_n that_o the_o office_n of_o god_n service_n be_v of_o no_o effect_n when_o they_o be_v minister_v by_o such_o as_o be_v not_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n for_o i_o presume_v it_o be_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v suppose_v on_o any_o hand_n that_o all_o who_o the_o church_n must_v employ_v be_v endow_v with_o god_n spirit_n that_o be_v be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n i_o suppose_v further_o as_o not_o question_v on_o any_o hand_n that_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n be_v to_o consist_v of_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n by_o the_o psalm_n of_o david_n and_o other_o hymn_n of_o god_n church_n of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o instruction_n of_o god_n people_n out_o of_o they_o in_o fine_a of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o those_o prayer_n which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o some_o of_o our_o sect_n have_v be_v bold_a to_o pretend_v that_o the_o psalter_n or_o psalm_n of_o david_n be_v impertinent_a to_o the_o devotion_n of_o christian_n as_o concern_v the_o particular_a condition_n of_o david_n and_o compose_v with_o regard_n to_o it_o whereby_o they_o
overthrow_v the_o foundation_n of_o christianity_n stand_v upon_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o figure_n and_o shadow_n of_o the_o new_a and_o that_o christ_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o writing_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n for_o see_v christ_n and_o his_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n be_v all_o one_o the_o meaning_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o psalm_n can_v concern_v christ_n but_o it_o must_v end_v in_o his_o church_n but_o see_v the_o church_n be_v but_o shadow_v in_o the_o psalm_n be_v part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o can_v expect_v no_o dispute_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o other_o hymn_n compose_v under_o christianity_n in_o the_o solemnize_n of_o god_n public_a service_n and_o see_v the_o question_n on_o foot_n concern_v the_o settle_n of_o the_o form_n of_o god_n service_n by_o a_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n there_o can_v remain_v no_o dispute_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o settle_a order_n in_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o use_v the_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o do_v i_o know_v any_o man_n sincere_o profess_v the_o reformation_n that_o can_v which_v not_o wish_v with_o all_o his_o heart_n that_o the_o whole_a order_n and_o form_n to_o be_v settle_v with_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o same_o may_v be_v according_a to_o the_o primitive_a simplicity_n and_o naked_a plainness_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n suppose_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o state_n in_o which_o the_o church_n live_v under_o persecution_n and_o now_o that_o be_v protect_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n it_o receive_v all_o the_o world_n to_o take_v part_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n for_o what_o difference_n this_o will_v infer_v in_o the_o order_n and_o rule_n of_o god_n service_n to_o be_v enact_v by_o a_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n common_a reason_n and_o the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o god_n church_n together_o with_o the_o precedent_n record_v in_o scripture_n must_v be_v admit_v to_o witness_n these_o thing_n suppose_v no_o man_n doubt_n that_o the_o form_n of_o service_n now_o in_o force_n by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o land_n may_v be_v acknowledge_v capable_a of_o amendment_n without_o disparagement_n either_o to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n that_o prescribe_v or_o of_o the_o nation_n that_o enact_v it_o for_o what_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n be_v there_o that_o be_v not_o nay_o what_o arrogance_n can_v it_o be_v in_o a_o particular_a person_n have_v bestow_v more_o consideration_n upon_o it_o than_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o tho●e_n who_o have_v the_o frame_n of_o it_o shall_v have_v leisure_n to_o do_v to_o think_v that_o he_o know_v some_o particular_n in_o which_o it_o may_v be_v mend_v for_o neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o endanger_v the_o spoil_n of_o it_o by_o call_v it_o in_o question_n then_o to_o let_v it_o rest_v as_o it_o be_v and_o that_o particular_a person_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o shall_v think_v his_o own_o opinion_n necessary_a to_o be_v follow_v without_o compromise_v it_o to_o the_o public_a will_v just_o incur_v the_o mark_n of_o arrogance_n since_o therefore_o that_o this_o be_v the_o time_n for_o such_o a_o debate_n if_o any_o change_n be_v pretend_v and_o that_o the_o reason_n mention_v afore_o be_v of_o sufficient_a consideration_n to_o oblige_v all_o side_n to_o prefer_v unity_n before_o prejudice_n what_o remain_v but_o that_o either_o it_o be_v leave_v entire_a in_o that_o state_n wherein_o it_o stand_v or_o that_o nothing_o be_v change_v without_o sufficient_a debate_n of_o reason_n upon_o the_o whole_a what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v change_v what_o not_o but_o one_o thing_n i_o must_v here_o express_o stand_v upon_o because_o the_o form_n of_o god_n service_n which_o have_v be_v usurp_v during_o the_o schism_n protest_v against_o the_o law_n in_o force_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o whole_a reformation_n protest_v against_o the_o insufficience_n and_o defect_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o course_n which_o it_o take_v for_o the_o instruction_n of_o christian_a people_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o christianity_n against_o the_o abuse_n there_o practise_v in_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n without_o any_o pretence_n of_o a_o communion_n in_o private_a mass_n and_o in_o serve_v god_n in_o a_o language_n which_o the_o people_n understand_v not_o for_o these_o abuse_n be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o ground_n for_o that_o change_n which_o we_o just_o maintain_v to_o be_v reformation_n the_o boldness_n of_o those_o that_o oppose_v it_o be_v come_v to_o such_o a_o height_n as_o open_o to_o maintain_v that_o it_o concern_v not_o christian_n people_n to_o know_v or_o to_o mind_n what_o be_v do_v at_o the_o mass_n be_v the_o ordinary_a service_n of_o god_n for_o which_o they_o come_v to_o church_n or_o what_o be_v say_v but_o that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v enough_o to_o apply_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a which_o they_o think_v it_o do_v no_o less_o to_o they_o that_o be_v absent_a and_o therefore_o leave_v we_o unsatisfied_a why_o people_n shall_v come_v to_o church_n who_o need_n do_v nothing_o but_o say_v their_o pater_n and_o their_o ave_n these_o abuse_n i_o do_v acknowledge_v but_o be_v the_o world_n my_o witness_n and_o all_o that_o know_v what_o have_v pass_v for_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n be_v it_o ever_o protest_a by_o those_o who_o demand_v reformation_n in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o eucharist_n ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v but_o four_o time_n or_o twelve_o time_n in_o the_o year_n that_o by_o god_n law_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v two_o sermon_n every_o sunday_n in_o every_o church_n that_o other_o festival_n beside_o the_o sunday_n and_o set_v time_n of_o fast_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v solemnize_v with_o the_o service_n of_o god_n that_o the_o church_n door_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v open_a but_o when_o there_o be_v preach_v take_v the_o primitive_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n along_o with_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o shall_v tell_v you_o another_o tale_n that_o prayer_n and_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v the_o more_o principal_a end_n of_o christian_a assembly_n then_o preach_v the_o reason_n be_v unanswerable_a for_o the_o one_o be_v the_o end_n the_o other_o the_o mean_n that_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o most_o principal_a office_n of_o god_n service_n under_o christianity_n be_v no_o less_o evident_a for_o other_o office_n be_v common_a to_o judaisme_n this_o consist_v most_o in_o prayer_n consist_v of_o those_o prayer_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o christianity_n that_o be_v to_o those_o cause_n wherein_o our_o salvation_n consist_v and_o can_v there_o be_v question_n how_o frequent_a it_o ought_v to_o be_v shall_v not_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o the_o beginning_n decide_v the_o question_n if_o any_o remain_v the_o single_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n prevail_v for_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v be_v always_o ready_a to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n say_v the_o father_n and_o the_o canon_n which_o i_o allege_v afore_o it_o be_v a_o question_n in_o gennadius_n de_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la whether_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o communicate_v every_o day_n or_o not_o but_o therefore_o no_o question_n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v every_o day_n that_o who_o so_o will_v may_v communicate_v in_o conscience_n will_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o preach_v every_o day_n that_o be_v so_o much_o for_o preach_v after_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n follow_v the_o sermon_n and_o after_o that_o the_o eucharist_n this_o be_v the_o primitive_a order_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n at_o that_o solemn_a service_n when_o the_o eucharist_n on_o fasting-day_n in_o the_o evening_n on_o other_o day_n before_o noon_n be_v celebrate_v after_o the_o scripture_n be_v read_v the_o people_n be_v teach_v their_o duty_n out_o of_o they_o a_o thing_n necessary_a and_o possible_a not_o that_o every_o curate_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o declaim_v by_o the_o glass_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o instruct_v his_o parish_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v read_v if_o he_o be_v tie_v to_o preach_v as_o often_o as_o the_o church_n door_n open_v the_o church_n door_n must_v be_v shut_v because_o no_o side_n can_v hold_v out_o so_o oft_o as_o christian_n ought_v to_o meet_v for_o god_n service_n i_o call_v the_o world_n to_o witness_v be_v it_o not_o as_o much_o a_o work_n of_o lung_n and_o side_n as_o a_o office_n of_o god_n service_n which_o take_v up_o the_o time_n of_o their_o church_n assembly_n be_v not_o the_o way_n open_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o declaim_v of_o public_a government_n in_o church_n and_o state_n to_o entertain_v the_o hearer_n for_o
will_v be_v be_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n and_o the_o papists_n idolater_n though_o to_o those_o that_o believe_v they_o so_o because_o they_o believe_v they_o so_o the_o measure_n and_o the_o bound_n of_o reformation_n will_v never_o appear_v to_o stand_v where_o indeed_o they_o do_v but_o let_v they_o look_v to_o the_o consequence_n of_o their_o own_o imagination_n this_o one_o must_v needs_o render_v they_o schismatic_n to_o god_n abhor_v communion_n upon_o imaginary_a reason_n but_o will_v render_v we_o with_o they_o schismatic_n both_o to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o church_n if_o we_o make_v all_o that_o to_o be_v reformation_n which_o their_o imagination_n taint_v with_o such_o a_o prejudice_n will_v have_v to_o be_v law_n to_o this_o church_n and_o kingdom_n chap._n xxii_o the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o question_n concern_v our_o service_n the_o reformation_n pretend_v abominable_a such_o preach_a and_o pray_v as_o be_v usual_a a_o hindrance_n of_o salvation_n rather_o than_o the_o mean_n to_o it_o what_o order_n of_o service_n the_o continual_a communion_n will_v require_v what_o form_n of_o instruction_n this_o order_n will_v require_v of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o the_o preface_n in_o our_o communion_n service_n of_o the_o preface_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o consecration_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o oblation_n and_o the_o place_n of_o it_o of_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o particular_a why_o the_o communion_n service_n at_o the_o communion_n table_n when_o no_o eucharist_n a_o secondary_a proposition_n according_a to_o present_v law_n i_o conceive_v i_o have_v by_o this_o time_n show_v a_o reason_n for_o that_o service_n the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o question_n concern_v our_o service_n which_o i_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o there_o be_v so_o much_o in_o question_n between_o we_o and_o the_o puritan_n comprise_v in_o that_o name_n all_o the_o party_n into_o which_o it_o stand_v now_o divide_v as_o if_o it_o be_v decide_v for_o they_o will_v give_v the_o papist_n the_o advantage_n against_o the_o protestant_n now_o as_o for_o the_o great_a question_n among_o we_o concern_v our_o service_n if_o it_o be_v true_o state_v it_o will_v soon_o be_v at_o a_o end_n if_o it_o may_v be_v once_o consider_v that_o the_o question_n be_v indeed_o and_o in_o truth_n whether_o sermon_n shall_v drive_v the_o communion_n out_o of_o the_o church_n or_o not_o whether_o or_o no_o arbitrary_a prayer_n in_o the_o pulpit_n shall_v chase_v out_o of_o the_o church_n those_o which_o st._n paul_n command_v to_o be_v make_v and_o the_o church_n by_o his_o command_n have_v frequent_v ever_o since_o i_o conceive_v the_o dispute_n will_v be_v easy_o decide_v and_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n indeed_o and_o in_o effect_n how_o little_a soever_o it_o appear_v certain_o if_o there_o be_v never_o any_o common_a prayer_n make_v in_o the_o pulpit_n if_o there_o be_v always_o common_a prayer_n make_v at_o the_o altar_n they_o who_o have_v no_o common_a prayer_n but_o at_o the_o eucharist_n have_v the_o eucharist_n as_o oft_o as_o they_o have_v common_a prayer_n not_o as_o if_o the_o church_n do_v never_o assemble_v but_o when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v but_o because_o their_o desire_n and_o endeavour_n be_v to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n once_o every_o day_n and_o that_o in_o the_o morning_n unless_o it_o be_v a_o fast_a and_o always_o at_o dismiss_v the_o assembly_n as_o the_o principal_a office_n of_o it_o for_o hence_o the_o eucharist_n come_v in_o time_n to_o be_v call_v the_o mass_n which_o have_v former_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o assembly_n itself_o from_o the_o dismiss_v of_o it_o and_o they_o who_o endeavour_v to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n every_o day_n be_v not_o like_a to_o let_v lord_n day_n and_o festival_n pass_v or_o think_v they_o solemnize_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v by_o christian_n without_o it_o since_o therefore_o i_o claim_v that_o this_o come_v by_o tradition_n of_o the_o abominable_a the_o reformation_n pretend_v abominable_a church_n from_o st._n paul_n order_n i_o will_v infer_v no_o less_o than_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o to_o change_v the_o communion_n every_o lord_n day_n and_o festival_n together_o with_o morning_n and_o evening_n prayer_n every_o day_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o with_o the_o litany_n upon_o wednesday_n and_o friday_n which_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n hitherto_o require_v for_o two_o sermon_n every_o sabbath_n with_o arbitrary_a prayer_n afore_o or_o after_o they_o will_v not_o be_v reformation_n but_o apostasy_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o at_o the_o reformation_n the_o eucharist_n be_v in_o possession_n in_o all_o church_n though_o the_o communion_n have_v be_v surcease_v nor_o be_v it_o ever_o except_v that_o the_o frequent_v hereof_o have_v in_o it_o any_o colour_n of_o abuse_n or_o abatement_n to_o that_o very_a christiani●y_n which_o we_o receive_v from_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o abuse_n be_v in_o private_a mass_n it_o be_v also_o a_o just_a complaint_n that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o teach_v their_o duty_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o the_o instruct_n of_o they_o by_o preach_v be_v neglect_v beyond_o all_o reason_n and_o conscience_n but_o be_v it_o ever_o pretend_a that_o the_o reform_v of_o the_o abuse_n in_o private_a mass_n consist_v in_o two_o sermon_n a_o sabbath_n for_o we_o must_v speak_v like_o jew_n if_o we_o will_v not_o offend_v tender_a conscience_n with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o people_n such_o as_o the_o minister_n shall_v please_v before_o or_o after_o it_o which_o be_v the_o reformation_n now_o pretend_v have_v it_o be_v say_v that_o this_o be_v reformation_n when_o abuse_n be_v so_o visible_a that_o the_o name_n of_o reformation_n be_v popular_a it_o have_v be_v easy_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v to_o bring_v the_o chief_a office_n of_o christianity_n to_o little_a or_o nothing_o and_o therefore_o if_o this_o be_v the_o form_n that_o be_v call_v reformation_n in_o some_o place_n it_o must_v be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v what_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v then_o to_o settle_v what_o shall_v be_v but_o for_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n have_v upon_o deliberation_n settle_v a_o order_n whereby_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v all_o lord_n day_n and_o festival_n for_o reformation_n sake_n to_o leave_v minister_n of_o tender_a conscience_n free_a not_o to_o celebrate_v it_o above_o thrice_o a_o year_n and_o that_o have_v a_o competent_a number_n to_o communicate_v which_o may_v be_v not_o once_o in_o seven_o year_n as_o now_o be_v demand_v i_o hope_v it_o shall_v never_o be_v say_v in_o the_o street_n of_o gath_n that_o it_o pass_v undetested_a it_o be_v necessary_a for_o he_o that_o be_v come_v to_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n it_o such_o preach_a and_o pray_v as_o be_v usual_a a_o hindrance_n of_o salvation_n rather_o than_o the_o mean_n to_o it_o as_o a_o christian_a to_o learn_v how_o he_o be_v to_o live_v as_o a_o christian_a and_o to_o grow_v every_o day_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o duty_n that_o he_o may_v discharge_v it_o but_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v this_o by_o hear_v two_o sermon_n every_o sabbath_n and_o as_o many_o more_o as_o if_o he_o do_v nothing_o else_o or_o may_v he_o not_o be_v able_a without_o it_o certain_o that_o which_o their_o preacher_n now_o do_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o be_v no_o fit_a mean_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o god_n people_n they_o may_v easy_o make_v it_o a_o trade_n never_o to_o fail_v to_o while_o out_o a_o hour_n or_o two_o in_o the_o pulpit_n in_o discourse_v the_o meaning_n of_o their_o text_n in_o frame_v doctrine_n out_o of_o it_o and_o proof_n of_o those_o doctrine_n more_o plentiful_a a_o great_a deal_n when_o they_o be_v so_o manifest_a that_o they_o need_v not_o then_o when_o they_o be_v so_o obscure_a that_o they_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n and_o upon_o these_o doctrine_n and_o proof_n exhortation_n invective_n instruction_n reproof_n such_o as_o the_o drive_v of_o faction_n shall_v require_v and_o ye●_n he_o that_o will_v learn_v his_o duty_n shall_v be_v as_o far_o to_o seek_v after_o many_o thousand_o of_o such_o sermon_n as_o afore_o and_o yet_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o act_n of_o no_o less_o charity_n to_o preach_v a_o sermon_n of_o christian_a instruction_n and_o exhortation_n in_o and_o to_o the_o know_a duty_n of_o all_o or_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n than_o it_o have_v always_o be_v repute_v by_o god_n church_n but_o let_v not_o a_o man_n therefore_o think_v if_o he_o have_v any_o doubt_n in_o some_o difficult_a point_n of_o doctrine_n in_o some_o nice_a case_n of_o conscience_n in_o the_o meaning_n of_o some_o lead_a text_n of_o